Sketches
of Jewish Social Life
by
Alfred Edersheim
The object of this volume is
kindred to that of my previous book on The Temple, its Ministry and Services as they were at the
Time of Jesus Christ. In both I have wished to transport the
reader into the land of Palestine at the time of our Lord and of His apostles,
and to show him, so far as lay within the scope of each book, as it were, the
scene on which, and the persons among whom the events recorded in New Testament
history had taken place. For I believe, that in measure as we realise its
surroundings--so to speak, see and hear for ourselves what passed at the time,
enter into its ideas, become familiar with its habits, modes of thinking, its
teaching and worship--shall we not only understand many of the expressions and
allusions in the New Testament, but also gain fresh evidence of the truth of
its history alike from its faithfulness to the picture of society, such as we
know it to have been, and from the contrast of its teaching and aims to those
of the contemporaries of our Lord.
For, a careful study of the period leaves this conviction on the mind: that--with reverence be it said--Jesus Christ was strictly of His time, and that the New Testament is, in its narratives, language, and allusions, strictly true to the period and circumstances in which its events are laid. But in another, and far more important, aspect there is no similarity between Christ and His period. "Never man"--of that, or any subsequent period--"spake like this man"; never man lived or died as He. Assuredly, if He was the Son of David, He also is the Son of God, the Saviour of the world.
In my book on The Temple, its Ministry and Services, I endeavoured to carry the
reader with me into the Sanctuary, and to make him witness all connected with
its institutions, its priesthood, and its solemnities. In this book I have
sought to take him into ordinary civil society, and to make him mingle with the
men and women of that period, see them in their homes and families, learn their
habits and manners, and follow them in their ordinary life--all, as
illustrative of New Testament history; at the same time endeavouring to present
in a popular form the scenes witnessed.
Another, and perhaps the most
important part in its bearing on Christianity, yet remains to be done: to trace
the progress of religious thought--as regards the canon of Scripture, the
Messiah, the law, sin, and salvation--to describe the character of theological
literature, and to show the state of doctrinal belief at the time of our Lord.
It is here especially that we should see alike the kinship in form and the
almost contrast in substance between what Judaism was at the time of Christ,
and the teaching and the kingdom of our Blessed Lord. But this lay quite
outside the scope of the present volume, and belongs to a larger work for which
this and my previous book may, in a sense, be regarded as forestudies.
Accordingly, where civil society touched, as on so many points it does, on the
theological and the doctrinal, it was only possible to "sketch" it,
leaving the outlines to be filled up. To give a complete representation of the
times of our Lord, in all their
bearings--to show not only who they were among whom Jesus Christ moved, but
what they knew, thought, and believed--and this as the frame, so to speak, in
which to set as a picture the life of our Blessed Lord Himself, such must now
be the work, to which, with all prayerful reverence and with most earnest
study, I shall henceforth set myself.
It seemed needful to state this,
in order to explain both the plan of this book and the manner of its treatment.
I will only add, that it embodies the results of many years' study, in which I
have availed myself of every help within my reach. It might seem affectation,
were I to enumerate the names of all the authorities consulted or books read in
the course of these studies. Those mentioned in the foot-notes constitute but a
very small proportion of them.
Throughout, my constant object has
been to illustrate the New Testament history and teaching. Even the
"Scripture Index" at the close will show in how many instances this
has been attempted. Most earnestly then do I hope, that these pages may be
found to cast some additional light on the New Testament, and that they will
convey fresh evidence--to my mind of the strongest kind--and in a new
direction, of the truth "of those things which are most surely believed
among us." And now it only remains at the close of these investigations
once more to express my own full and joyous belief in that grand truth to which
all leads up--that "CHRIST IS THE END OF THE LAW FOR RIGHTEOUSNESS TO
EVERY ONE THAT BELIEVETH."
Alfred Edersheim.
The Vicarage, Loders, Bridport:
November, 1876.
Chapter 1
Palestine Eighteen Centuries Ago
Eighteen
and a half centuries ago, and the land which now lies desolate--its bare, grey
hills looking into ill-tilled or neglected valleys, its timber cut down, its
olive- and vine-clad terraces crumbled into dust, its villages stricken with
poverty and squalor, its thoroughfares insecure and deserted, its native
population well-nigh gone, and with them its industry, wealth, and
strength--presented a scene of beauty, richness, and busy life almost
unsurpassed in the then known world. The Rabbis never weary of its praises,
whether their theme be the physical or the moral pre-eminence of Palestine. It
happened, so writes one of the oldest Hebrew commentaries, that Rabbi Jonathan
was sitting under a fig-tree, surrounded by his students. Of a sudden he
noticed how the ripe fruit overhead, bursting for richness, dropped its
luscious juice on the ground, while at a little distance the distended udder of
a she-goat was no longer able to hold the milk. "Behold," exclaimed
the Rabbi, as the two streams mingled, "the literal fulfillment of the
promise: 'a land flowing with milk and honey.'" "The land of Israel
is not lacking in any product whatever," argued Rabbi Meir, "as it is
written (Deu 8:9): 'Thou shalt not lack anything in it.'" Nor were such
statements unwarranted; for Palestine combined every variety of climate, from
the snows of Hermon and the cool of Lebanon to the genial warmth of the Lake of
Galilee and the tropical heat of the Jordan valley. Accordingly not only the
fruit trees, the grain, and garden produce known in our colder latitudes were
found in the land, along with those of sunnier climes, but also the rare spices
and perfumes of the hottest zones. Similarly, it is said, every kind of fish
teemed in its waters, while birds of most gorgeous plumage filled the air with
their song. Within such small compass the country must have been unequalled for
charm and variety. On the eastern side of Jordan stretched wide plains, upland
valleys, park-like forests, and almost boundless corn and pasture lands; on the
western side were terraced hills, covered with olives and vines, delicious
glens, in which sweet springs murmured, and fairy-like beauty and busy life, as
around the Lake of Galilee. In the distance stretched the wide sea, dotted with
spreading sails; here was luxurious richness, as in the ancient possessions of
Issachar, Manasseh, and Ephraim; and there, beyond these plains and valleys,
the highland scenery of Judah, shelving down through the pasture tracts of the
Negev, or South country, into the great and terrible wilderness. And over all,
so long as God's blessing lasted, were peace and plenty. Far as the eye could
reach, browsed "the cattle on a thousand hills"; the pastures were
"clothed with flocks, the valleys also covered over with corn"; and
the land, "greatly enriched with the river of God," seemed to
"shout for joy," and "also to sing." Such a possession,
heaven-given at the first and heaven-guarded throughout, might well kindle the
deepest enthusiasm.
"We
find," writes one of the most learned Rabbinical commentators, supporting
each assertion by a reference to Scripture (R.
Bechai), "that thirteen things are in the sole ownership of the Holy
One, blessed be His Name! and these are they: the silver, the gold, the
priesthood, Israel, the first-born, the altar, the first-fruits, the anointing
oil, the tabernacle of meeting, the kingship of the house of David, the
sacrifices, the land of Israel, and the eldership." In truth, fair as the
land was, its conjunction with higher spiritual blessings gave it its real and
highest value. "Only in Palestine does the Shechinah manifest itself," taught the Rabbis. Outside its
sacred boundaries no such revelation was possible. It was there that rapt
prophets had seen their visions, and psalmists caught strains of heavenly
hymns. Palestine was the land that had Jerusalem for its capital, and on its
highest hill that temple of snowy marble and glittering gold for a sanctuary,
around which clustered such precious memories, hallowed thoughts, and glorious,
wide-reaching hopes. There is no religion so strictly local as that of Israel.
Heathenism was indeed the worship of national deities, and Judaism that of
Jehovah, the God of heaven and earth. But the national deities of the heathen
might be transported, and their rites adapted to foreign manners. On the other
hand, while Christianity was from the first universal
in its character and design, the religious institutions and the worship of the
Pentateuch, and even the prospects opened by the prophets were, so far as they concerned Israel,
strictly of Palestine and for Palestine. They are wholly
incompatible with the permanent loss of the land. An extra-Palestinian Judaism,
without priesthood, altar, temple, sacrifices, tithes, first-fruits, Sabbatical
and Jubilee years, must first set aside the Pentateuch, unless, as in
Christianity, all these be regarded as blossoms designed to ripen into fruit,
as types pointing to, and fulfilled in higher realities. * Outside the land
even the people are no longer Israel: in view of the Gentiles they are Jews; in
their own view, "the dispersed abroad."
* This is not the place to explain what substitution Rabbinism
proposed for sacrifices, etc. I am well aware that modern Judaism tries to
prove by such passages as 1 Sam 15:22; Psa 51:16, 17; Isa 1:11-13; Hosea 6:6,
that, in the view of the prophets, sacrifices, and with them all the ritual
institutions of the Pentateuch, were of no permanent importance. To the
unprejudiced reader it seems difficult to understand how even party-spirit
could draw such sweeping conclusions from such premises, or how t could ever be
imagined that the prophets had intended by their teaching, not to explain or
apply, but to set aside the law so solemnly given on Sinai. However, the device
is not new. A solitary voice ventured even in the second century on the
suggestion that the sacrificial worship had been intended only by way of
accommodation, to preserve Israel from lapsing into heathen rites!
All
this the Rabbis could not fail to perceive. Accordingly when, immediately after
the destruction of Jerusalem by Titus, they set themselves to reconstruct their
broken commonwealth, it was on a new basis indeed, but still within Palestine.
Palestine was the Mount Sinai of Rabbinism. Here rose the spring of the Halachah, or traditional law, whence it
flowed in ever-widening streams; here, for the first centuries, the learning,
the influence, and the rule of Judaism centered; and there they would fain have
perpetuated it. The first attempts at rivalry by the Babylonian schools of Jewish
learning were keenly resented and sharply put down. Only the force of
circumstances drove the Rabbis afterwards voluntarily to seek safety and
freedom in the ancient seats of their captivity, where, politically unmolested,
they could give the final development to their system. It was this desire to
preserve the nation and its learning in Palestine which inspired such
sentiments as we are about to quote. "The very air of Palestine makes one
wise," said the Rabbis. The Scriptural account of the borderland of
Paradise, watered by the river Havilah, of which it is said that "the gold
of that land is good," was applied to their earthly Eden, and paraphrased
to mean, "there is no learning like that of Palestine." It was a
saying, that "to live in Palestine was equal to the observance of all the
commandments." "He that hath his permanent abode in Palestine,"
so taught the Talmud, "is sure of the life to come." "Three
things," we read in another authority, "are Israel's through
suffering: Palestine, traditional lore, and the world to come." Nor did
this feeling abate with the desolation of their country. In the third and
fourth centuries of our era they still taught, "He that dwelleth in
Palestine is without sin."
Centuries
of wandering and of changes have not torn the passionate love of this land from
the heart of the people. Even superstition becomes here pathetic. If the Talmud
(Cheth. iii. a.) had already
expressed the principle, "Whoever is buried in the land of Israel, is as
if he were buried under the altar," one of the most ancient Hebrew
commentaries (Ber. Rabba) goes much
farther. From the injunction of Jacob and Joseph, and the desire of the fathers
to be buried within the sacred soil, it is argued that those who lay there were
to be the first "to walk before the Lord in the land of the living"
(Psa 116:9), the first to rise from the dead and to enjoy the days of the
Messiah. Not to deprive of their reward the pious, who had not the privilege of
residing in Palestine, it was added, that God would make subterranean roads and
passages into the Holy Land, and that, when their dust reached it, the Spirit
of the Lord would raise them to new life, as it is written (Eze 37:12-14):
"O My people, I will open your graves, and cause you to come up out of
your graves, and bring you into the land of Israel...and shall put My Spirit in
you, and ye shall live; and I shall place you in your own land." Almost
every prayer and hymn breathes the same love of Palestine. Indeed, it were
impossible, by any extracts, to convey the pathos of some of those elegies in
which the Synagogue still bewails the loss of Zion, or expresses the pent-up
longing for its restoration. Desolate, they cling to its ruins, and believe,
hope, and pray--oh, how ardently! in almost every prayer--for the time that
shall come, when the land, like Sarah of old, will, at the bidding of the Lord,
have youth, beauty, and fruitfulness restored, and in Messiah the King "a
horn of salvation shall be raised up" * to the house of David.
* These are words of prayer taken from one of the most ancient
fragments of the Jewish liturgy, and repeated, probably for two thousand years,
every day by every Jew.
Yet it
is most true, as noticed by a recent writer, that no place could have been more
completely swept of relics than is Palestine. Where the most solemn
transactions have taken place; where, if we only knew it, every footstep might
be consecrated, and rocks, and caves, and mountain-tops be devoted to the
holiest remembrances--we are almost in absolute ignorance of exact localities.
In Jerusalem itself even the features of the soil, the valleys, depressions,
and hills have changed, or at least lie buried deep under the accumulated ruins
of centuries. It almost seems as if the Lord meant to do with the land what
Hezekiah had done with that relic of Moses--the brazen serpent--when he stamped
it to pieces, lest its sacred memories should convert it into an occasion for
idolatry. The lie of land and water, of mountain and valley, are the same;
Hebron, Bethlehem, the Mount of Olives, Nazareth, the Lake of Gennesaret, the
land of Galilee, are still there, but all changed in form and appearance, and
with no definite spot to which one could with absolute certainty attach the
most sacred events. Events, then, not places; spiritual realities, not their
outward surroundings, have been given to mankind by the land of Palestine.
"So
long as Israel inhabited Palestine," says the Babylonian Talmud, "the
country was wide; but now it has become narrow." There is only too much
historical truth underlying this somewhat curiously-worded statement. Each
successive change left the boundaries of the Holy Land narrowed. Never as yet
has it actually reached the extent indicated in the original promise to Abraham
(Gen 15:18), and afterwards confirmed to the children of Israel (Exo 23:31).
The nearest approach to it was during the reign of King David, when the power
of Judah extended as far as the river Euphrates (2 Sam 8:3-14). At present the
country to which the name Palestine attaches is smaller than at any previous
period. As of old, it still stretches north and south "from Dan to
Beersheba"; in the east and west from Salcah (the modern Sulkhad) to
"the great sea," the Mediterranean. Its superficial area is about
12,000 square miles, its length from 140 to 180, its breadth in the south about
75, and in the north from 100 to 120 miles. To put it more pictorially, the
modern Palestine is about twice as large as Wales; it is smaller than Holland,
and about equal in size to Belgium. Moreover, from the highest mountain-peaks a
glimpse of almost the whole country may be obtained. So small was the land
which the Lord chose as the scene of the most marvellous events that ever
happened on earth, and whence He appointed light and life to flow forth into all
the world!
When
our blessed Saviour trod the soil of Palestine, the country had already
undergone many changes. The ancient division of tribes had given way; the two
kingdoms of Judah and Israel existed no longer; and the varied foreign
domination, and the brief period of absolute national independence, had alike
ceased. Yet, with the characteristic tenacity of the East for the past, the
names of the ancient tribes still attached to some of the districts formerly
occupied by them (comp. Matt 4:13, 15). A comparatively small number of the
exiles had returned to Palestine with Ezra and Nehemiah, and the Jewish
inhabitants of the country consisted either of those who had originally been
left in the land, or of the tribes of Judah and Benjamin. The controversy about
the ten tribes, which engages so much attention in our days, raged even at the
time of our Lord. "Will He go unto the dispersed among the Gentiles?"
asked the Jews, when unable to fathom the meaning of Christ's prediction of His
departure, using that mysterious vagueness of language in which we generally
clothe things which we pretend to, but really do not, know. "The ten
tribes are beyond the Euphrates till now, and are an immense multitude, and not
to be estimated by numbers," writes Josephus, with his usual grandiloquent
self-complacency. But where--he informs us as little as any of his other
contemporaries. We read in the earliest Jewish authority, the Mishnah (Sanh. x. 3): "The ten tries shall
never return again, as it is written (Deu 29:28), 'And He cast them into
another land, as this day.' As 'this day' goeth and does not return again, so
they also go and do not return. This is the view of Rabbi Akiba. Rabbi Elieser
says, 'As the day becomes dark and has light again, so the ten tribes, to whom
darkness has come; but light shall also be restored to them.'"
At the
time of Christ's birth Palestine was governed by Herod the Great; that is, it
was nominally an independent kingdom, but under the suzerainty of Rome. On the
death of Herod--that is, very close upon the opening of the gospel story--a
fresh, though only temporary, division of his dominions took place. The events
connected with it fully illustrate the parable of our Lord, recorded in Luke
19:12-15, 27. If they do not form its historical groundwork, they were at least
so fresh in the memory of Christ's hearers, that their minds must have
involuntarily reverted to them. Herod died, as he had lived, cruel and
treacherous. A few days before his end, he had once more altered his will, and
nominated Archelaus his successor in the kingdom; Herod Antipas (the Herod of
the gospels), tetrarch of Galilee and Peraea; and Philip, tetrarch of
Gaulonitis, Trachonitis, Batanaea, and Panias--districts to which, in the
sequel, we may have further to refer. As soon after the death of Herod as
circumstances would permit, and when he had quelled a rising in Jerusalem,
Archelaus hastened to Rome to obtain the emperor's confirmation of his father's
will. He was immediately followed by his brother Herod Antipas, who in a
previous testament of Herod had been left what Archelaus now claimed. Nor were
the two alone in Rome, They found there already a number of members of Herod's
family, each clamorous for something, but all agreed that they would rather
have none of their own kindred as king, and that the country should be put
under Roman sway; if otherwise, they anyhow preferred Herod Antipas to
Archelaus. Each of the brothers had, of course, his own party, intriguing,
manoeuvring, and trying to influence the emperor. Augustus inclined from the
first to Archelaus. The formal decision, however, was for a time postponed by a
fresh insurrection in Judaea, which was quelled only with difficulty.
Meanwhile, a Jewish deputation appeared in Rome, entreating that none of the Herodians
might ever be appointed king, on the ground of their infamous deeds, which they
related, and that they (the Jews) might be allowed to live according to their
own laws, under the suzerainty of Rome. Augustus ultimately decided to carry
out the will of Herod the Great, but gave Archelaus the title of ethnarch
instead of king, promising him the higher grade if he proved deserving of it
(Matt 2:22). On his return to Judaea, Archelaus (according to the story in the
parable) took bloody vengeance on "his citizens that hated him, and sent a
message after him, saying, We will not have this man to reign over us."
The reign of Archelaus did not last long. Fresh and stronger complaints came
from Judaea. Archealus was deposed, and Judaea joined to the Roman province of
Syria, but with a procurator of its own. The revenues of Archelaus, so long as
he reigned, amounted to very considerably over 240,000 pounds a year; those of
his brothers respectively to a third and sixth of that sum. But his was as
nothing compared to the income of Herod the Great, which stood at the enormous
sum of about 680,000 pounds; and that afterwards of Agrippa II, which is
computed as high as half a million. In thinking of these figures, it is
necessary to bear in mind the general cheapness of living in Palestine at the
time, which may be gathered from the smallness of the coins in circulation, and
from the lowness of the labour market. The smallest coin, a (Jewish) perutah,
amounted to only the sixteenth of a penny. Again, readers of the New Testament
will remember that a labourer was wont to receive for a day's work in field or
vineyard a denarius (Matt 20:2), or about 8d., while the Good Samaritan paid
for the charge of the sick person whom he left in the inn only two denars, or
about 1s. 4d (Luke 10:35).
But we
are anticipating. Our main object was to explain the division of Palestine in
the time of our Lord. Politically speaking, it consisted of Judaea and Samaria,
under Roman procurators; Galilee and Peraea (on the other side Jordan), subject
to Herod Antipas, the murderer of John the Baptist--"that fox" full
of cunning and cruelty, to whom the Lord, when sent by Pilate, would give no
answer; and Batanaea, Trachonitis, and Auranitis, under the rule of the
tetrarch Philip. It would require too many details to describe accurately those
latter provinces. Suffice, that they lay quite to the north-east, and that one
of their principal cities was Caesarea Philippi (called after the Roman
emperor, and after Philip himself), where Peter made that noble confession,
which constituted the rock on which the Church was to be built (Matt 16:16;
Mark 8:29). It was the wife of this Philip, the best of all Herod's sons, whom
her brother-in-law, Herod Antipas, induced to leave her husband,and for whose
sake he beheaded John (Matt 14:3, etc.; Mark 6:17; Luke 3:19). It is well to
know that this adulterous and incestuous union brought Herod immediate trouble
and misery, and that it ultimately cost him his kingdom, and sent him into
life-long banishment.
Such
was the political division of Palestine. Commonly it was arranged into Galilee,
Samaria, Judaea, and Peraea. It is scarcely necessary to say that the Jews did
not regard Samaria as belonging to the Holy Land, but as a strip of foreign
country--as the Talmud designates it (Chag.
25 a.), "a Cuthite strip," or "tongue," intervening between
Galilee and Judaea. From the gospels we know that the Samaritans were not only
ranked with Gentiles and strangers (Matt 10:5; John 4:9,20), but that the very
term Samaritan was one of reproach (John 8:48). "There be two manner of
nations," says the son of Sirach (Ecclus. 1.25,26), "which my heart
abhorreth, and the third is no nation; they that sit upon the mountain of
Samaria, and they that dwell among the Philistines, and that foolish people
that dwell in Sichem." And Josephus has a story to account for the
exclusion of the Samaritans from the Temple, to the effect that in the night of
the Passover, when it was the custom to open the Temple gates at midnight, a
Samaritan had come and strewn bones in the porches and throughout the Temple to
defile the Holy House. Most unlikely as this appears, at least in its details,
it shows the feeling of the people. On the other hand, it must be admitted that
the Samaritans fully retaliated by bitter hatred and contempt. For, at every
period of sore national trial, the Jews had no more determined or relentless
enemies than those who claimed to be the only true representatives of Israel's
worship and hopes.
Chapter 2
Jews and Gentiles in "The Land"
Coming
down from Syria, it would have been difficult to fix the exact spot where, in
the view of the Rabbis, "the land" itself began. The boundary lines,
though mentioned in four different documents, are not marked in anything like
geographical order, but as ritual questions connected with them came up for
theological discussion. For, to the Rabbis the precise limits of Palestine were
chiefly interesting so far as they affected the religious obligations or
privileges of a district. And in this respect the fact that a city was in
heathen possession exercised a decisive influence. Thus the environs of
Ascalon, the wall of Caesarea, and that of Acco, were reckoned within the
boundaries of Palestine, though the cities themselves were not. Indeed, viewing
the question from this point, Palestine was to the Rabbis simply "the
land," * all other countries being summed up under the designation of
"outside the land." In the Talmud, even the expression "Holy
Land," so common among later Jews and Christians, ** does not once occur.
* So mostly; the expression also occurs "the land of
Israel."
** The only passage of Scripture in which the term is used is Zech
2:12, or rather 2:16 of the Hebrew original.
It
needed not that addition, which might have suggested a comparison with other
countries; for to the Rabbinist Palestine was not only holy, but the only holy
ground, to the utter exclusion of all other countries, although they marked
within its boundaries an ascending scale of ten degrees of sanctity, rising from
the bare soil of Palestine to the most holy place in the Temple (Chel. i. 6-9). But "outside the
land" everything was darkness and death. The very dust of a heathen
country was unclean, and it defiled by contact. It was regarded like a grave,
or like the putrescence of death. If a spot of heathen dust had touched an
offering, it must at once be burnt. More than that, if by mischance any heathen
dust had been brought into Palestine, it did not and could not mingle with that
of "the land," but remained to the end what it had been--unclean,
defiled, and defiling everything to which it adhered. This will cast light upon
the meaning conveyed by the symbolical directions of our Lord to His disciples
(Matt 10:14), when He sent them forth to mark out the boundary lines of the
true Israel--"the kingdom of heaven," that was at hand:
"Whosoever shall not receive you, nor hear your words, when ye depart out
of that house or city, shake off the dust of your feet." In other words,
they were not only to leave such a city or household, but it was to be
considered and treated as if it were heathen, just as in the similar case
mentioned in Matthew 18:17. All contact with such must be avoided, all trace of
it shaken off, and that, even though, like some of the cities in Palestine that
were considered heathen, they were surrounded on every side by what was
reckoned as belonging to Israel.
The
Mishnah (Shev, vi. 1; Chall. iv. 8) marks, in reference to
certain ordinances, "three lands" which might equally be designated
as Palestine, but to which different ritual regulations applied. The first
comprised, "all which they who came up from Babylon took possession of in
the land of Israel and unto Chezib" (about three hours north of Acre); the
second, "all that they who came up from Egypt took possession of from
Chezib and unto the river (Euphrates) eastward, and unto Amanah" (supposed
to be a mountain near Antioch, in Syria); while the third, seemingly indicating
certain ideal outlines, was probably intended to mark what "the land"
would have been, according to the original promise of God, although it was
never possessed to that extent by Israel. * For our present purpose, of course,
only the first of these definitions must be applied to "the land." We
read in Menachoth vii. 1: "Every
offering, ** whether of the congregation or of an individual (public or
private), may come from 'the land,' or from 'outside the land, be of the new
product (of the year) or of old product, except the omer (the wave-sheaf at the Passover) and the two loaves (at
Pentecost), which may only be brought from new product (that of the current
year), and from that (which grows) within 'the land.'" To these two, the
Mishnah adds in another passage (Chel.
i. 6) also the Biccurim, or
first-fruits in their fresh state, although inaccurately, since the latter were
likewise brought from what is called by the Rabbis Syria, *** which seems to
have been regarded as, in a sense, intermediate between "the land"
and "outside the land."
* The expressions in the original are so obscure as to render it
difficult to form a quite definite judgment. In the text we have followed the
views expressed by M. Neubauer.
** Neither of the English words: "sacrifice,"
"offering," or "gift" quite corresponds to the Hebrew Korban, derived from a verb which in one
mood means to be near, and in another to bring near. In the one case it would
refer to the offerings themselves, in the other to the offerers, as brought
near, the offerings bringing them near to God. The latter seems to me both
etymologically and theologically the right explanation. Aberbanel combines both
in his definition of Korban.
*** Syria sent Biccurim
to Jerusalem, but was not liable to second tithes, nor for the fourth year's
product of plants (Lev 19:24).
The
term Soria, or Syria, does not
include that country alone, but all the lands which, according to the Rabbis,
David had subdued, such as Mesopotamia, Syria, Zobah, Achlab, etc. It would be
too lengthy to explain in detail the various ordinances in regard to which Soria was assimilated to, and those by
which it was distinguished from, Palestine proper. The preponderance of duty
and privilege was certainly in favour of Syria, so much so, that if one could
have stepped from its soil straight to that of Palestine, or joined fields in
the two countries, without the interposition of any Gentile strip, the land and
the dust of Syria would have been considered clean, like that of Palestine
itself (Ohol. xviii. 7). There was
thus around "the land" a sort of inner band, consisting of those
countries supposed to have been annexed by King David, and termed Soria. But besides this, there was also
what may be called an outer band, towards the Gentile world, consisting of
Egypt, Babylon, Ammon and Moab, the countries in which Israel had a special
interest, and which were distinguished from the rest, "outside the
land," by this, that they were liable to tithes and the Therumoth, or first-fruits in a prepared
state. Of course neither of these contributions was actually brought into
Palestine, but either employed by them for their sacred purposes, or else
redeemed.
Maimonides
arranges all countries into three classes, "so far as concerns the
precepts connected with the soil"--"the land, Soria, and outside the
land"; and he divides the land of Israel into territory possessed before
and after the Exile, while he also distinguishes between Egypt, Babylon, Moab,
and Ammon, and other lands (Hilch. Ther.
i. 6). In popular estimate other distinctions were likewise made. Thus Rabbi
Jose of Galilee would have it (Bicc.
i. 10), that Biccurim * were not to
be brought from the other side of Jordan, "because it was not a land
flowing with milk and honey."
* For a full explanation of the distinction between Biccurim and Therumoth see my work on The Temple: Its Ministry and Services as they were at the
time of Jesus Christ.
But as
the Rabbinical law in this respect differed from the view expressed by Rabbi
Jose, his must have been an afterthought, probably intended to account for the
fact that they beyond Jordan did not bring their first-fruits to the Temple.
Another distinction claimed for the country west of the Jordan curiously
reminds us of the fears expressed by the two and a half tribes on their return
to their homes, after the first conquest of Palestine under Joshua (Josh
22:24,25), since it declared the land east of Jordan less sacred, on account of
the absence of the Temple, of which it had not been worthy. Lastly, Judaea
proper claimed pre-eminence over Galilee, as being the centre of Rabbinism. Perhaps
it may be well here to state that, notwithstanding strict uniformity on all
principal points, Galilee and Judaea had each its own peculiar legal customs
and rights, which differed in many particulars one from the other.
What
has hitherto been explained from Rabbinical writings gains fresh interest when
we bring it to bear on the study of the New Testament. For, we can now
understand how those Zealots from Jerusalem, who would have bent the neck of
the Church under the yoke of the law of Moses, sought out in preference the
flourishing communities in Syria for the basis of their operations (Acts 15:1).
There was a special significance in this, as Syria formed a kind of outer
Palestine, holding an intermediate position between it and heathen lands.
Again, it results from our inquiries, that, what the Rabbis considered as the
land of Israel proper, may be regarded as commencing immediately south of
Antioch. Thus the city where the first Gentile Church was formed (Acts
11:20,21); where the disciples were first called Christians (Acts 11:26); where
Paul so long exercised his ministry, and whence he started on his missionary
journeys, was, significantly enough, just outside the land of Israel.
Immediately beyond it lay the country over which the Rabbis claimed entire
sway. Travelling southwards, the first district which one would reach would be
what is known from the gospels as "the coasts (or tracts) of Tyre and
Sidon." St. Mark describes the district more particularly (Mark 7:24) as
"the borders of Tyre and Sidon." These stretched, according to
Josephus (Jewish War, iii, 35), at
the time of our Lord, from the Mediterranean towards Jordan. It was to these
extreme boundary tracts of "the land," that Jesus had withdrawn from
the Pharisees, when they were offended at His opposition to their
"blind" traditionalism; and there He healed by the word of His power
the daughter of the "woman of Canaan," the intensity of whose faith
drew from His lips words of precious commendation (Matt 15:28; Mark 7:29). It
was chiefly a heathen district where the Saviour spoke the word of healing, and
where the woman would not let the Messiah of Israel go without an answer. She
herself was a Gentile. Indeed, not only that district, but all around, and
farther on, the territory of Philip, was almost entirely heathen. More than
that, strange as it may sound, all around the districts inhabited by the Jews
the country was, so to speak, fringed by foreign nationalities and by heathen
worship, rites, and customs.
Properly
to understand the history of the time and the circumstances indicated in the
New Testament, a correct view of the state of parties in this respect is
necessary. And here we must guard against a not unnatural mistake. If any one
had expected to find within the boundaries of "the land" itself one
nationality, one language, the same interests, or even one religion publicly
professed, he would have been bitterly disappointed. It was not merely for the
presence of the Romans and their followers, and of a more or less influential
number of foreign settlers, but the Holy Land itself was a country of mixed and
hostile races, of divided interests, where close by the side of the narrowest
and most punctilious Pharisaism heathen temples rose, and heathen rites and
customs openly prevailed. In a general way all this will be readily understood.
For, those who returned from Babylon were comparatively few in number, and
confessedly did not occupy the land in its former extent. During the troubled
period which followed, there was a constant influx of heathen, and unceasing
attempts were made to introduce and perpetuate foreign elements. Even the
language of Israel had undergone a change. In the course of time the ancient
Hebrew had wholly given place to the Aramaean dialect, except in public worship
and in the learned academies of theological doctors. Such words and names in
the gospels as Raka, Abba, Golgotha, Gabbatha, Akel-Dama, Bartholomaios,
Barabbas, Bar-Jesus, and the various verbal quotations, are all Aramaean. It
was probably in that language that Paul addressed the infuriated multitude,
when standing on the top of the steps leading from the Temple into the fortress
Antonia (Acts 21:40; 22:1ff). But along with the Hebraic Aramaean--for so we
would designate the language--the Greek had for some time been making its way
among the people. The Mishnah itself contains a very large number of Greek and
Latin words with Hebraic terminations, showing how deeply Gentile life and
customs around had affected even those who hated them most, and, by inference,
how thoroughly they must have penetrated Jewish society in general. But
besides, it had been long the policy of their rulers systematically to promote
all that was Grecian in thought and feeling. It needed the obstinate
determinateness, if not the bigotry, of Pharisaism to prevent their success,
and this may perhaps partly explain the extreme of their antagonism against all
that was Gentile. A brief notice of the religious state of the outlying
districts of the country may place this in a clearer light.
In the
far north-east of the land, occupying at least in part the ancient possession
of Manasseh, were the provinces belonging to the tetrarch Philip (Luke 3:1).
Many spots there (Mark 8:22; Luke 9:10; Matt 16:13) are dear to the Christian
memory. After the Exile these districts had been peopled by wild, predatory
nomads, like the Bedawin of our days. These lived chiefly in immense caves,
where they stored their provisions, and in case of attack defended themselves
and their flocks. Herod the Great and his successors had indeed subdued, and
settled among them, a large number of Jewish and Idumaean colonists--the former
brought from Babylon, under the leadership of one Zamaris, and attracted, like
the modern German colonists in parts of Russia, by immunity from taxation. But
the vast majority of the people were still Syrians and Grecians, rude,
barbarous, and heathens. Indeed, there the worship of the old Syrian gods had
scarcely given way to the more refined rites of Greece. It was in this
neighbourhood that Peter made that noble confession of faith, on which, as on a
rock, the Church is built. But Caesarea Philippi was originally Paneas, the
city devoted to Pan; nor does its change of name indicate a more Jewish
direction on the part of its inhabitants. Indeed, Herod the Great had built
there a temple to Augustus. But further particulars are scarcely necessary, for
recent researches have everywhere brought to light relics of the worship of the
Phoenician Astarte, of the ancient Syrian god of the sun, and even of the
Egyptian Ammon, side by side with that of the well-known Grecian deities. The
same may be said of the refined Damascus, the territory of which formed here
the extreme boundary of Palestine. Passing from the eastern to the western
bounds of Palestine, we find that in Tyre and Ptolemais Phrygian, Egyptians,
Phoenician, and Greek rites contended for the mastery. In the centre of
Palestine, notwithstanding the pretence of the Samaritans to be the only true
representatives of the religion of Moses, the very name of their capital,
Sebaste, for Samaria, showed how thoroughly Grecianised was that province.
Herod had built in Samaria also a magnificent temple to Augustus; and there can
be no doubt that, as the Greek language, so Grecian rites and idolatry prevailed.
Another outlying district, the Decapolis
(Matt 4:25; Mark 5:20, 7:31), was almost entirely Grecian in constitution,
language, and worship. It was in fact, a federation of ten heathen cities
within the territory of Israel, possessing a government of their own. Little is
known of its character; indeed, the cities themselves are not always equally
enumerated by different writers. We name those of most importance to readers of
the New Testament. Scythopolis, the
ancient Beth-shean (Josh 17:11,16;
Judg 1:27; 1 Sam 31:10,12, etc.), was the only one of those cities situated west of the Jordan. It lay about four
hours south of Tiberias. Gadara, the
capital of Peraea, is known to us from Matthew 8:28; Mark 5:1; Luke 8:26.
Lastly, we mention as specially interesting, Pella, the place to which the Christians of Jerusalem fled in
obedience to the warning of our Lord (Matt 24:15-20), to escape the doom of the
city, when finally beleaguered by the Romans. The situation of Pella has not
been satisfactorily ascertained, but probably it lay at no great distance from
the ancient Jabesh Gilead.
But to
return. From what has been said, it will appear that there remained only
Galilee and Judaea proper, in which strictly Jewish views and manners must be
sought for. Each of these will be described in detail. For the present it will
suffice to remark, that north-eastern or Upper Galilee was in great part
inhabited by Gentiles--Phoenicians, Syrians, Arabs, and Greeks (Josephus, Jewish War, iii, 419-427), whence the
name "Galilee of the Gentiles" (Matt 4:15). It is strange in how many
even of those cities, with which we are familiar from the New Testament, the
heathen element prevailed. Tiberias,
which gave its name to the lake, was at the time of Christ of quite recent
origin, having been built by the tetrarch Herod Antipas (the Herod of the
gospel history), and named in honour of the Emperor Tiberius. Although endowed
by its founder with many privileges, such as houses and lands for its
inhabitants, and freedom from taxation--the latter being continued by Vespasian
after the Jewish war--Herod had to colonise it by main force, so far as its few
Jewish inhabitants were concerned. For, the site on which the city stood had of
old covered a place of burial, and the whole ground was therefore levitically
unclean (Josephus, Ant, xviii, 38).
However celebrated, therefore, afterwards as the great and final seat of the
Jewish Sanhedrim, it was originally chiefly un-Jewish. Gaza had its local deity; Ascalon
worshipped Astarte; Joppa was the
locality where, at the time when Peter had his vision there, they still showed
on the rocks of the shore the marks of the chains, by which Andromeda was said
to have been held, when Perseus came to set her free. Caesarea was an essentially heathen city, though inhabited by many
Jews; and one of its most conspicuous ornaments was another temple to Augustus,
built on a hill opposite the entrance to the harbour, so as to be visible far
out at sea. But what could be expected, when in Jerusalem itself Herod had
reared a magnificent theatre and amphitheatre, to which gladiators were brought
from all parts of the world, and where games were held, thoroughly anti-Jewish
and heathen in their spirit and tendency? (Josephus, Ant., xv, 274). The favourites and counsellors by whom that monarch
surrounded himself were heathens; wherever he or his successors could, they
reared heathen temples, and on all occasions they promoted the spread of
Grecian views. Yet withal they professed to be Jews; they would not shock
Jewish prejudices; indeed, as the building of the Temple, the frequent advocacy
at Rome of the cause of Jews when oppressed, and many other facts show, the
Herodians would fain have kept on good terms with the national party, or rather
used it as their tool. And so Grecianism spread. Already Greek was spoken and
understood by all the educated classes in the country; it was necessary for
intercourse with the Roman authorities, with the many civil and military
officials, and with strangers; the "superscription" on the coins was
in Greek, even though, to humour the Jews, none of the earlier Herods had his
own image impressed on them. * Significantly enough, it was Herod Agrippa I,
the murderer of St. James, and the would-be murderer of St. Peter, who introduced
the un-Jewish practice of images on coins. Thus everywhere the foreign element
was advancing. A change or else a struggle was inevitable in the near future.
* The coin mentioned in Matthew 22:20, which bore an
"image," as well as a "superscription," must therefore have
been either struck in Rome, or else one of the tetrarch Philip, who was the
first to introduce the image of Caesar on strictly Jewish coins.
And
what of Judaism itself at the period? It was miserably divided, even though no
outward separation had taken place. The Pharisees and Sadducees held opposite
principles, and hated each other; the Essenes looked down upon them both.
Within Pharisaism the schools of Hillel and Shammai contradicted each other on
almost every matter. But both united in their unbounded contempt of what they
designated as "the country-people"--those who had no traditional
learning, and hence were either unable or unwilling to share the discussions,
and to bear the burdens of legal ordinances, which constituted the chief matter
of traditionalism. There was only one feeling common to all--high and low, rich
and poor, learned and unlettered: it was that of intense hatred of the
foreigner. The rude Galileans were as "national" as the most
punctilious Pharisees; indeed, in the war against Rome they furnished the most
and the bravest soldiers. Everywhere the foreigner was in sight; his were the
taxes levied, the soldiery, the courts of ultimate appeal, the government. In
Jerusalem they hung over the Temple as a guard in the fortress of Antonia, and
even kept in their custody the high-priest's garments, * so that, before
officiating in the Temple, he had actually always to apply for them to the
procurator or his representative! They were only just more tolerable as being
downright heathens than the Herodians, who mingled Judaism with heathenism,
and, having sprung from foreign slaves, had arrogated to themselves the kingdom
of the Maccabees.
* The practice commenced innocently enough. The high-priest
Hyrcanus, who built the Tower of Baris, kept his dress there, and his sons
continued the practice. When Herod seized the government, he retained, for
reasons readily understood, this custody, in the fortress of Antonia, which he
had substituted for the ancient tower. On similar grounds the Romans followed
the lead of Herod. Josephus (Ant.
xviii, 93) describes "the stone chamber" in which these garments were
kept, under seal of the priests, with a light continually burning there.
Vitellius, the successor of Pilate, restored to the Jews the custody of the
high-priestly garments, when they were kept in a special apartment in the
Temple.
Readers
of the New Testament know what separation Pharisaical Jews made between
themselves and heathens. It will be readily understood, that every contact with
heathenism and all aid to its rites should have been forbidden, and that in
social intercourse any levitical defilement, arising from the use of what was
"common or unclean," was avoided. But Pharisaism went a great deal
further than this. Three days before a heathen festival all transactions with
Gentiles were forbidden, so as to afford them neither direct nor indirect help
towards their rites; and this prohibition extended even to private festivities,
such as a birthday, the day of return from a journey, etc. On heathen festive
occasions a pious Jew should avoid, if possible, passing through a heathen
city, certainly all dealings in shops that were festively decorated. It was
unlawful for Jewish workmen to assist in anything that might be subservient
either to heathen worship or heathen rule, including in the latter the erection
of court-houses and similar buildings. It need not be explained to what lengths
or into what details Pharisaical punctiliousness carried all these ordinances.
From the New Testament we know, that to enter the house of a heathen defiled
till the evening (John 18:28), and that all familiar intercourse with Gentiles
was forbidden (Acts 10:28). So terrible was the intolerance, that a Jewess was
actually forbidden to give help to her heathen neighbour, when about to become
a mother (Avod. S. ii. 1)! It was not
a new question to St. Paul, when the Corinthians inquired about the lawfulness
of meat sold in the shambles or served up at a feast (1 Cor 10:25,27,28).
Evidently he had the Rabbinical law on the subject before his mind, while, on
the one hand, he avoided the Pharisaical bondage of the letter, and, on the
other, guarded against either injuring one's own conscience, or offending that
of an on-looker. For, according to Rabbi Akiba, "Meat which is about to be
brought in heathen worship is lawful, but that which comes out from it is
forbidden, because it is like the sacrifices of the dead" (Avod. S. ii. 3). But the separation went
much beyond what ordinary minds might be prepared for. Milk drawn from a cow by
heathen hands, bread and oil prepared by them, might indeed be sold to
strangers, but not used by Israelites. No pious Jew would of course have sat
down at the table of a Gentile (Acts 11:3; Gal 2:12). If a heathen were invited
to a Jewish house, he might not be left alone in the room, else every article
of food or drink on the table was henceforth to be regarded as unclean. If
cooking utensils were bought of them, they had to be purified by fire or by
water; knives to be ground anew; spits to be made red-hot before use, etc. It
was not lawful to let either house or field, nor to sell cattle, to a heathen;
any article, however distantly connected with heathenism, was to be destroyed.
Thus, if a weaving-shuttle had been made of wood grown in a grove devoted to
idols, every web of cloth made by it was to be destroyed; nay, if such pieces
had been mixed with others, to the manufacture of which no possible objection
could have been taken, these all became unclean, and had to be destroyed.
These
are only general statements to show the prevalent feeling. It was easy to prove
how it pervaded every relationship of life. The heathens, though often
tolerant, of course retorted. Circumcision, the Sabbath-rest, the worship of an
invisible God, and Jewish abstinence from pork, formed a never-ending theme of
merriment to the heathen. Conquerors are not often chary in disguising their
contempt for the conquered, especially when the latter presume to look down
upon, and to hate them. In view of all this, what an almost incredible truth
must it have seemed, when the Lord Jesus Christ proclaimed it among Israel as
the object of His coming and kingdom, not to make of the Gentiles Jews, but of
both alike children of one Heavenly Father; not to rivet upon the heathen the
yoke of the law, but to deliver from it Jew and Gentile, or rather to fulfil
its demands for all! The most unexpected and unprepared-for revelation, from
the Jewish point of view, was that of the breaking down of the middle wall of
partition between Jew and Gentile, the taking away of the enmity of the law,
and the nailing it to His cross. There was nothing analogous to it; not a hint
of it to be found, either in the teaching or the spirit of the times. Quite the
opposite. Assuredly, the most unlike thing to Christ were His times; and the
greatest wonder of all--"the mystery hidden from ages and
generations"--the foundation of one universal Church.
Chapter 3
In Galilee at the time of our Lord
"If
any one wishes to be rich, let him go north; if he wants to be wise, let him
come south." Such was the saying, by which Rabbinical pride distinguished
between the material wealth of Galilee and the supremacy in traditional lore
claimed for the academies of Judaea proper. Alas, it was not long before Judaea
lost even this doubtful distinction, and its colleges wandered northwards,
ending at last by the Lake of Gennesaret, and in that very city of Tiberias
which at one time had been reputed unclean! Assuredly, the history of nations
chronicles their judgment; and it is strangely significant, that the
authoritative collection of Jewish traditional law, known as the Mishnah, and
the so-called Jerusalem Talmud, which is its Palestinian commentary, * should
finally have issued from what was originally a heathen city, built upon the
site of old forsaken graves.
* There are two Talmuds--the Jerusalem and the Babylonian--to the
text of the Mishnah. The Babylonian Talmud is considerably younger than that of
Jerusalem, and its traditions far more deeply tinged with superstition and
error of every kind. For historical purposes, also, the Jerusalem Talmud is of
much greater value and authority than that of the Eastern Schools.
But so
long as Jerusalem and Judaea were the centre of Jewish learning, no terms of
contempt were too strong to express the supercilious hauteur, with which a regular Rabbinist regarded his northern
co-religionists. The slighting speech of Nathanael (John 1:46), "Can there
any good thing come out of Nazareth?" reads quite like a common saying of
the period; and the rebuke of the Pharisees to Nicodemus (John 7:52),
"Search, and look: for out of Galilee ariseth no prophet," was
pointed by the mocking question, "Art thou also of Galilee?" It was
not merely self-conscious superiority, such as the "towns-people," as
the inhabitants of Jerusalem used to be called throughout Palestine, were said
to have commonly displayed towards their "country cousins" and every
one else, but offensive contempt, outspoken sometimes with almost incredible rudeness,
want of delicacy and charity, but always with much pious self-assertion. The
"God, I thank Thee that I am not as other men" (Luke 18:11) seems
like the natural breath of Rabbinism in the company of the unlettered, and of
all who were deemed intellectual or religious inferiors; and the parabolic
history of the Pharisee and the publican in the gospel is not told for the
special condemnation of that one prayer, but as characteristic of the whole
spirit of Pharisaism, even in its approaches to God. "This people who
knoweth not the law (that is, the traditional law) are cursed," was the
curt summary of the Rabbinical estimate of popular opinion. To so terrible a
length did it go that the Pharisees would fain have excluded them, not only
from common intercourse, but from witness-bearing, and that they even applied
to marriages with them such a passage as Deuteronomy 27:21.
But if
these be regarded as extremes, two instances, chosen almost at random--one from
religious, the other from ordinary life--will serve to illustrate their
reality. A more complete parallel to the Pharisee's prayer could scarcely be
imagined than the following. We read in the Talmud (Jer. Ber, iv. 2) that a celebrated Rabbi was wont every day, on
leaving the academy, to pray in these terms: "I thank Thee, O Lord my God
and God of my fathers, that Thou hast cast my lot among those who frequent the
schools and synagogues, and not among those who attend the theatre and the
circus. For, both I and they work and watch--I to inherit eternal life, they
for their destruction." The other illustration, also taken from a
Rabbinical work, is, if possible, even more offensive. It appears that Rabbi
Jannai, while travelling by the way, formed acquaintance with a man, whom he
thought his equal. Presently his new friend invited him to dinner, and
liberally set before him meat and drink. But the suspicions of the Rabbi had
been excited. He began to try his host successively by questions upon the text
of Scripture, upon the Mishnah, allegorical interpretations, and lastly on
Talmudical lore. Alas! on neither of these points could he satisfy the Rabbi.
Dinner was over; and Rabbi Jannai, who by that time no doubt had displayed all
the hauteur and contempt of a regular
Rabbinist towards the unlettered, called upon his host, as customary, to take
the cup of thanksgiving, and return thanks. But the latter was sufficiently
humiliated to reply, with a mixture of Eastern deference and Jewish modesty,
"Let Jannai himself give thanks in his own house." "At any rate,"
observed the Rabbi, "you can join with me"; and when the latter had
agreed to this, Jannai said, "A dog has eaten of the bread of
Jannai!"
Impartial
history, however, must record a different judgment of the men of Galilee from
that pronounced by the Rabbis, and that even wherein they were despised by
those leaders in Israel. Some of their peculiarities, indeed, were due to
territorial circumstances. The province of Galilee--of which the name might be
rendered "circuit," being derived from a verb meaning "to move
in a circle"--covered the ancient possession of four tribes: Issachar,
Zebulon, Naphtali, and Asher. The name occurs already in the Old Testament
(compare Josh 20:7; 1 Kings 9:11; 2 Kings 15:29; 1 Chron 6:76; and especially
Isa 9:1). In the time of Christ it stretched northwards to the possessions of
Tyre on the one side, and to Syria on the other; on the south it was bounded by
Samaria--Mount Carmel on the western, and the district of Scythopolis (in the
Decapolis) on the eastern side, being here landmarks; while the Jordan and the
Lake of Gennesaret formed the general eastern boundary-line. Thus regarded, it
would include names to which such reminiscences attach as "the mountains
of Gilboa," where "Israel and Saul fell down slain"; little Hermon,
Tabor, Carmel, and that great battle-field of Palestine, the plain of Jezreel.
Alike the Talmud and Josephus divide it into Upper and Lower Galilee, between
which the Rabbis insert the district of Tiberias, as Middle Galilee. We are
reminded of the history of Zaccheus (Luke 19:4) by the mark which the Rabbis
give to distinguish between Upper and Lower Galilee--the former beginning
"where sycomores cease to grow." The sycomore, which is a species of
fig, must, of course, not be confounded with our sycamore, and was a very delicate
evergreen, easily destroyed by cold (Psa 78:47), and growing only in the Jordan
valley, or in Lower Galilee up to the sea-coast. The mention of that tree may
also help us to fix the locality where Luke 17:6 was spoken by the Saviour. The
Rabbis mention Kefar Hananyah, probably the modern Kefr Anan, to the north-west
of Safed, as the first place in Upper Galilee. Safed was truly "a city set
on an hill"; and as such may have been in view of the Lord, when He spoke
the Sermon on the Mount (Matt 5:14). In the Talmud it is mentioned by the name
of Zephath, and spoken of as one of the signal-stations, whence the
proclamation of the new moon, made by the Sanhedrim in Jerusalem (see The Temple), and with it the beginning of every
month, was telegraphed by fire-signals from hill to hill throughout the land,
and far away east of the Jordan, to those of the dispersion.
The
mountainous part in the north of Upper Galilee presented magnificent scenery,
with bracing air. Here the scene of the Song of Solomon is partly laid (Cant
7:5). But its caves and fastnesses, as well as the marshy ground, covered with
reeds, along Lake Merom, gave shelter to robbers, outlaws, and rebel chiefs.
Some of the most dangerous characters came from the Galilean highlands. A
little farther down, and the scenery changed. South of Lake Merom, where the
so-called Jacob's bridge crosses the Jordan, we come upon the great caravan
road, which connected Damascus in the east with the great mart of Ptolemais, on
the shore of the Mediterranean. What a busy life did this road constantly
present in the days of our Lord, and how many trades and occupations did it
call into existence! All day long they passed--files of camel, mules, and
asses, laden with the riches of the East, destined for the far West, or
bringing the luxuries of the West to the far East. Travellers of every
description--Jews, Greeks, Romans, dwellers in the East--were seen here. The
constant intercourse with foreigners, and the settlement of so many strangers
along one of the great highways of the world, must have rendered the
narrow-minded bigotry of Judaea well-nigh impossible in Galilee.
We are
now in Galilee proper, and a more fertile or beautiful region could scarcely be
conceived. It was truly the land where Asher dipped his foot in oil (Deu
33:24). The Rabbis speak of the oil as flowing like a river, and they say that
it was easier in Galilee to rear a forest of olive-trees than one child in
Judaea! The wine, although not so plentiful as the oil, was generous and rich.
Corn grew in abundance, especially in the neighbourhood of Capernaum; flax also
was cultivated. The price of living was much lower than in Judaea, where one
measure was said to cost as much as five in Galilee. Fruit also grew to
perfection; and it was probably a piece of jealousy on the part of the
inhabitants of Jerusalem, that they would not allow it to be sold at the feasts
in the city, lest people should forsooth say, "We have only come up in
order to taste fruit from Galilee" (Pes.
8 b). Josephus speaks of the country in perfectly rapturous terms. He counts no
fewer than 240 towns and villages, and speaks of the smallest as containing not
less than 15,000 inhabitants! This, of course, must be gross exaggeration, as
it would make the country more than twice as thickly populated as the densest
districts in England or Belgium. Some one has compared Galilee to the
manufacturing districts of this country. This comparison, of course, applies
only to the fact of its busy life, although various industries were also carried
on there--large potteries of different kinds, and dyeworks. From the heights of
Galilee the eye would rest on harbours, filled with merchant ships, and on the
sea, dotted with white sails. There, by the shore, and also inland, smoked
furnaces, where glass was made; along the great road moved the caravans; in
field, vineyard, and orchard all was activity. The great road quite traversed
Galilee, entering it where the Jordan is crossed by the so-called bridge of
Jacob, then touching Capernaum, going down to Nazareth, and passing on to the
sea-coast. This was one advantage that Nazareth had--that it lay on the route
of the world's traffic and intercourse. Another peculiarity is strangely
unknown to Christian writers. It appears from ancient Rabbinical writings that
Nazareth was one of the stations of the priests. All the priests were divided
into twenty-four courses, one of which was always on ministry in the Temple.
Now, the priests of the course which was to be on duty always gathered in
certain towns, whence they went up in company to the Temple; those who were
unable to go spending the week in fasting and prayer for their brethren.
Nazareth was one of these priestly centres; so that there, with symbolic
significance, alike those passed who carried on the traffic of the world, and
those who ministered in the Temple.
We have
spoken of Nazareth; and a few brief notices of other places in Galilee,
mentioned in the New Testament, may be of interest. Along the lake lay, north,
Capernaum, a large city; and near it, Chorazin, so celebrated for its grain,
that, if it had been closer to Jerusalem, it would have been used for the
Temple; also Bethsaida, * the name, "house of fishes," indicating its
trade.
* Three were two places of that name, one east of the Jordan,
Bethsaida Julias, referred to in Luke 9:10; Mark 8:22; the other on the western
shore of the Lake of Galilee, the birthplace of Andrew and Peter (John 1:44).
See also Mark 6:45; Matthew 11:21; Luke 10:13; John 12:21.
Capernaum
was the station where Matthew sat at the receipt of custom (Matt 9:9). South of
Capernaum was Magdala, the city of dyers, the home of Mary Magdalene (Mark
15:40, 16:1; Luke 8:2; John 20:1). The Talmud mentions its shops and its
woolworks, speaks of its great wealth, but also of the corruption of its
inhabitants. Tiberias, which had been built shortly before Christ, is only
incidentally mentioned in the New Testament (John 6:1,23, 21:1). At the time it
was a splendid but chiefly heathen city, whose magnificent buildings contrasted
with the more humble dwellings common in the country. Quite at the southern end
of the lake was Tarichaea, the great fishing place, whence preserved fish was
exported in casks (Strabo, xvi, 2). It was there that, in the great Roman war,
a kind of naval battle was fought, which ended in terrible slaughter, no
quarter being given by the Romans, so that the lake was dyed red with the blood
of the victims, and the shore rendered pestilential by their bodies. Cana in
Galilee was the birthplace of Nathanael (John 21:2), where Christ performed His
first miracle (John 2:1-11); significant also in connection with the second
miracle there witnessed, when the new wine of the kingdom was first tasted by
Gentile lips (John 4:46,47). Cana lay about three hours to the north-north-east
of Nazareth. Lastly, Nain was one of the southernmost places in Galilee, not
far from the ancient Endor.
It can
scarcely surprise us, however interesting it may prove, that such Jewish
recollections of the early Christians as the Rabbis have preserved, should
linger chiefly around Galilee. Thus we have, in quite the apostolic age,
mention of miraculous cures made, in the name of Jesus, by one Jacob of Chefar
Sechanja (in Galilee), one of the Rabbis violently opposing on one occasion an
attempt of the kind, the patient meanwhile dying during the dispute; repeated
records of discussions with learned Christians, and other indications of
contact with Hebrew believers. Some have gone farther, and found traces of the
general spread of such views in the fact that a Galilean teacher is introduced
in Babylon as propounding the science of the Merkabah, or the mystical doctrines connected with Ezekiel's vision
of the Divine chariot, which certainly contained elements closely approximating
the Christian doctrines of the Logos, the Trinity, etc. Trinitarian views have
also been suspected in the significance attached to the number
"three" by a Galilean teacher of the third century, in this wise:
"Blessed be God, who has given the three laws (the Pentateuch, the Prophets,
and the Hagiographa) to a people composed of three classes (Priests, Levites,
and laity), through him who was the youngest of three (Miriam, Aaron, and
Moses), on the third day (of their separation--Exo 19:16), and in the third
month." There is yet another saying of a Galilean Rabbi, referring to the
resurrection, which, although far from clear, may bear a Christian application.
Finally, the Midrash applies the expression, "The sinner shall be taken by
her" (Eccl 7:26), either to the above-named Christian Rabbi Jacob, or to
Christians generally, or even to Capernaum, with evident reference to the
spread of Christianity there. We cannot here pursue this very interesting
subject farther than to say, that we find indications of Jewish Christians
having endeavoured to introduce their views while leading the public devotions
of the Synagogue, and even of contact with the immoral heretical sect of the
Nicolaitans (Rev 2:15).
Indeed,
what we know of the Galileans would quite prepare us for expecting, that the gospel
should have received at least a ready hearing among many of them. It was not
only, that Galilee was the great scene of our Lord's working and teaching, and
the home of His first disciples and apostles; nor yet that the frequent
intercourse with strangers must have tended to remove narrow prejudices, while
the contempt of the Rabbinists would loosen attachment to the strictest
Pharisaism; but, as the character of the people is described to us by Josephus,
and even by the Rabbis, they seem to have been a warm-hearted, impulsive,
generous race--intensely national in the best sense, active, not given to idle
speculations or wire-drawn logico-theological distinctions, but conscientious
and earnest. The Rabbis detail certain theological differences between Galilee
and Judaea. Without here mentioning them, we have no hesitation in saying, that
they show more earnest practical piety and strictness of life, and less
adherence to those Pharisaical distinctions which so often made void the law.
The Talmud, on the other hand, charges the Galileans with neglecting
traditionalism; learning from one teacher, then from another (perhaps because
they had only wandering Rabbis, not fixed academies); and with being
accordingly unable to rise to the heights of Rabbinical distinctions and
explanations. That their hot blood made them rather quarrelsome, and that they
lived in a chronic state of rebellion against Rome, we gather not only from
Josephus, but even from the New Testament (Luke 13:2; Acts 5:37). Their
mal-pronunciation of Hebrew, or rather their inability properly to pronounce
the gutturals, formed a constant subject of witticism and reproach, so current
that even the servants in the High Priest's palace could turn round upon Peter,
and say, "Surely thou also art one of them; for thy speech bewrayeth
thee" (Matt 26:73)--a remark this, by the way, which illustrates the fact
that the language commonly used at the time of Christ in Palestine was
Aramaean, not Greek. Josephus describes the Galileans as hard-working, manly,
and brave; and even the Talmud admits (Jer.
Cheth. iv. 14) that they cared more for honour than for money.
But the
district in Galilee to which the mind ever reverts, is that around the shores
of its lake. * Its beauty, its marvellous vegetation, its almost tropical
products, its wealth and populousness, have been often described. The Rabbis
derive the name of Gennesaret either from a harp--because the fruits of its
shores were as sweet as is the sound of a harp--or else explain it to mean
"the gardens of the princes," from the beautiful villas and gardens
around.
* The New Testament speaks so often of the occupation of fishers
by the Lake of Galilee, that it is interesting to know that fishing on the lake was free to all. The
Talmud mentions this as one of the ten ordinances given by Joshua of old (Baba Kama, 80 b).
But we
think chiefly not of those fertile fields and orchards, nor of the deep blue of
the lake, enclosed between hills, nor of the busy towns, nor of the white sails
spread on its waters--but of Him, Whose feet trod its shores; Who taught, and
worked, and prayed there for us sinners; Who walked its waters and calmed its
storms, and Who even after His resurrection held there sweet converse with His
disciples; nay, Whose last words on earth, spoken from thence, come to us with
peculiar significance and application, as in these days we look on the
disturbing elements in the world around: "What is that to thee? Follow
thou Me" (John 21:22).
Chapter 4
Travelling in Palestine--Roads, Inns, Hospitality,
Custom-House Officers, Taxation, Publicans
It was
the very busiest road in Palestine, on which the publican Levi Matthew sat at
the receipt of "custom," when our Lord called him to the fellowship
of the Gospel, and he then made that great feast to which he invited his
fellow-publicans, that they also might see and hear Him in Whom he had found
life and peace (Luke 5:29). For, it was the only truly international road of
all those which passed through Palestine; indeed, it formed one of the great highways
of the world's commerce. At the time of which we write, it may be said, in
general, that six main arteries of commerce and intercourse traversed the
country, the chief objective points being Caesarea, the military, and
Jerusalem, the religious capital. First,
there was the southern road, which led from Jerusalem, by Bethlehem, to Hebron,
and thence westwards to Gaza, and eastwards into Arabia, whence also a direct
road went northwards to Damascus. It is by this road we imagine St. Paul to
have travelled, when retiring into the solitudes of Arabia, immediately after
his conversion (Gal 1:17,18). The road to Hebron must have been much frequented
by priestly and other pilgrims to the city, and by it the father of the Baptist
and the parents of Jesus would pass. Secondly,
there was the old highway along the sea-shore from Egypt up to Tyre, whence a
straight, but not so much frequented, road struck, by Caesarea Philippi, to
Damascus. But the sea-shore road itself, which successively touched Gaza,
Ascalon, Jamnia, Lydda, Diospolis, and finally Caesarea and Ptolemais, was
probably the most important military highway in the land, connecting the
capital with the seat of the Roman procurator at Caesarea, and keeping the
sea-board and its harbours free for communication. This road branched off for
Jerusalem at Lydda, where it bifurcated, leading either by Beth-horon or by
Emmaus, which was the longer way. It was probably by this road that the Roman
escort hurried off St. Paul (Acts 23:31), the mounted soldiers leaving him at
Antipatris, about twenty Roman miles from Lydda, and altogether from Jerusalem
about fifty-two Roman miles (the Roman mile being 1,618 yards, the English mile
1,760). Thus the distance to Caesarea, still left to be traversed next morning
by the cavalry would be about twenty-six Roman miles, or, the whole way,
seventy-eight Roman miles from Jerusalem. This rate of travelling, though
rapid, cannot be regarded as excessive, since an ordinary day's journey is
computed in the Talmud (Pes 93b) as
high as forty Roman miles. A third
road led from Jerusalem, by Beth-horon and Lydda, to Joppa, whence it continued
close by the sea-shore to Caesarea. This was the road which Peter and his
companions would take when summoned to go and preach the gospel to Cornelius
(Acts 10:23,24). It was at Lydda, thirty-two Roman miles from Jerusalem, that
Aeneas was miraculously healed, and "nigh" to it--within a few
miles--was Joppa, where the raising of Tabitha, Dorcas, "the gazelle"
(Acts 9:32-43), took place. Of the fourth
great highway, which led from Galilee to Jerusalem, straight through Samaria,
branching at Sichem eastwards to Damascus, and westwards to Caesarea, it is
needless to say much, since, although much shorter, it was, if possible,
eschewed by Jewish travellers; though, both in going to (Luke 9:53, 17:11), and
returning from Jerusalem (John 4:4,43), the Lord Jesus passed that way. The
road from Jerusalem straight northwards also branched off at Gophna, whence it led across to
Diospolis, and so on to Caesarea. But ordinarily, Jewish travellers would,
rather than pass through Samaria, face the danger of robbers which awaited them
(Luke 10:30) along the fifth great
highway (comp. Luke 19:1,28; Matt 20:17,29), that led from Jerusalem, by
Bethany, to Jericho. Here the Jordan was forded, and the road led to Gilead,
and thence either southwards, or else north to Peraea, whence the traveller
could make his way into Galilee. It will be observed that all these roads,
whether commercial or military, were, so to speak, Judaean, and radiated from
or to Jerusalem. But the sixth and
great road, which passed through Galilee, was not at all primarily Jewish, but
connected the East with the West--Damascus with Rome. From Damascus it led
across the Jordan to Capernaum, Tiberias, and Nain (where it fell in with a
direct road from Samaria), to Nazareth, and thence to Ptolemais. Thus, from its
position, Nazareth was on the world's great highway. What was spoken there
might equally re-echo throughout Palestine, and be carried to the remotest
lands of the East and of the West.
It need
scarcely be said, that the roads which we have thus traced are only those along
the principal lines of communication. But a large number of secondary roads
also traversed the country in all directions. Indeed, from earliest times much
attention seems to have been given to facility of intercourse throughout the
land. Even in the days of Moses we read of "the king's highway" (Num
20:17,19, 21:22). In Hebrew we have, besides the two general terms (derech and orach), three expressions which respectively indicate a trodden or
beaten-down path (nathiv, from nathav, to tread down), a made or
cast-up road (messillah, from salal, to cast up), and "the king's
highway"--the latter, evidently for national purposes, and kept up at the
public expense. In the time of the kings (for example, 1 Kings 12:18), and even
earlier, there were regular carriage roads, although we can scarcely credit the
statement of Josephus (Antiq, viii,
7, 4) That Solomon had caused the principal roads to be paved with black
stone--probably basalt. Toll was apparently levied in the time of Ezra (Ezra
4:13,20); but the clergy were exempt from this as from all other taxation
(7:24). The roads to the cities of refuge required to be always kept in good
order (Deu 19:3). According to the Talmud they were to be forty-eight feet
wide, and provided with bridges, and with sign-posts where roads diverged.
Passing
to later times, the Romans, as might have been expected, paid great attention
to the modes of communication through the country. The military roads were
paved, and provided with milestones. But the country roads were chiefly
bridle-paths. The Talmud distinguishes between public and private roads. The
former must be twenty-four, the latter six feet wide. It is added that, for the
king's highway, and for the road taken by funerals, there is no measure (Babba B. vi. 7). Roads were annually
repaired in spring, preparatory for going up to the great feasts. To prevent
the possibility of danger, no subterranean structure, however protected, was
allowed under a public road. Overhanging branches of trees had to be cut down,
so as to allow a man on a camel to pass. A similar rule applied to balconies
and projections; nor were these permitted to darken a street. Any one allowing
things to accumulate on the road, or dropping them from a cart, had to make
good what damage might be incurred by travellers. Indeed, in towns and their
neighbourhood the police regulations were even more strict; and such ordinances
occur as for the removal within thirty days of rotten trees or dangerous walls;
not to pour out water on the road; not to throw out anything on the street, nor
to leave about building materials, or broken glass, or thorns, along with other
regulations for the public safety and health.
Along
such roads passed the travellers; few at first, and mostly pilgrims, but
gradually growing in number, as commerce and social or political intercourse
increased. Journeys were performed on foot, upon asses, or in carriages (Acts
8:28), of which three kinds are mentioned--the round carriage, perhaps like our
gig; the elongated, like a bed; and the cart, chiefly for the transport of
goods. It will be understood that in those days travelling was neither
comfortable nor easy. Generally, people journeyed in company, of which the
festive bands going to Jerusalem are a well-known instance. If otherwise, one
would prepare for a journey almost as for a change of residence, and provide
tent, victuals, and all that was needful by the way. It was otherwise with the
travelling hawker, who was welcomed as a friend in every district through which
he passed, who carried the news of the day, exchanged the products of one for
those of another district, and produced the latest articles of commerce or of
luxury. Letters were only conveyed by special messengers, or through
travellers.
In such
circumstances, the command, "Be not forgetful to entertain
strangers," had a special meaning. Israel was always distinguished for
hospitality; and not only the Bible, but the Rabbis, enjoin this in the
strongest terms. In Jerusalem no man was to account a house as only his own;
and it was said, that during the pilgrim-feasts none ever wanted ready
reception. The tractate Aboth (1.5),
mentions these as two out of the three sayings of Jose, the son of Jochanan, of
Jerusalem: "Let thy house be wide open, and let the poor be the children
of thy house." Readers of the New Testament will be specially interested
to know, that, according to the Talmud (Pes.
53), Bethphage and Bethany, to which in this respect such loving memories
cling, were specially celebrated for their hospitality towards the festive
pilgrims. In Jerusalem it seems to have been the custom to hang a curtain in
front of the door, to indicate that there was still room for guests. Some went
so far as to suggest, there should be four doors to every house, to bid welcome
to travellers from all directions. The host would go to meet an expected guest,
and again accompany him part of the way (Acts 21:5). The Rabbis declared that
hospitality involved as great, and greater merit than early morning attendance
in an academy of learning. They could scarcely have gone farther, considering
the value they attached to study. Of course, here also the Rabbinical order had
the preference; and hospitably to entertain a sage, and to send him away with
presents, was declared as meritorious as to have offered the daily sacrifices (Ber. 10, b).
But let
there be no misunderstanding. So far as the duty of hospitality is concerned, or
the loving care for poor and sick, it were impossible to take a higher tone
than that of Rabbinism. Thus it was declared, that "the entertainment of
travellers was as great a matter as the reception of the Shechinah." This gives a fresh meaning to the admonition of
the Epistle addressed specially to the Hebrews (13:2): "Be not forgetful
to entertain strangers: for thereby some have entertained angels
unawares." Bearing on this subject, one of the oldest Rabbinical
commentaries has a very beautiful gloss on Psalm 109:31: "He shall stand
at the right hand of the poor." "Whenever," we read, "a
poor man stands at thy door, the Holy One, blessed be His Name, stands at his
right hand. If thou givest him alms, know that thou shalt receive a reward from
Him who standeth at his right hand." In another commentary God Himself and
His angels are said to visit the sick. The Talmud itself counts hospitality
among the things of which the reward is received alike in this life and in that
which is to come (Shab. 127 a), while
in another passage (Sot. 14 a) we are
bidden imitate God in these four respects: He clothed the naked (Gen 3:21); He
visited the sick (Gen 18:1); He comforted the mourners (Gen 25:11); and He
buried the dead (Deu 34:6).
In
treating of hospitality, the Rabbis display, as in so many relations of life,
the utmost tenderness and delicacy, mixed with a delightful amount of shrewd
knowledge of the world and quaint humour. As a rule, they enter here also into
full details. Thus the very manner in which a host is to bear himself towards
his guests is prescribed. He is to look pleased when entertaining his guests,
to wait upon them himself, to promise little and to give much, etc. At the same
time it was also caustically added: "Consider all men as if they were
robbers, but treat them as if each were Rabbi Gamaliel himself!" On the
other hand, rules of politeness and gratitude are equally laid down for the
guests. "Do not throw a stone," it was said, "into the spring at
which you have drunk" (Baba K,.
92); or this, "A proper guest acknowledges all, and saith, 'At what
trouble my host has been, and all for my sake!'--while an evil visitor remarks:
'Bah! what trouble has he taken?' Then, after enumerating how little he has had
in the house, he concludes; 'And, after all, it was not done for me, but only
for his wife and children!'" (Ber.
58 a). Indeed, some of the sayings in this connection are remarkably parallel
to the directions which our Lord gave to His disciples on going forth upon
their mission (Luke 10:5-11, and parallels). Thus, one was to inquire for the
welfare of the family; not to go from house to house; to eat of such things as
were set before one; and, finally, to part with a blessing.
All
this, of course, applied to entertainment in private families. On unfrequented
roads, where villages were at great intervals, or even outside towns (Luke
2:7), there were regular khans, or places of lodgment for strangers. Like the
modern khans, these places were open, and generally built in a square, the
large court in the middle being intended for the beasts of burden or carriages,
while rooms opened upon galleries all around. Of course these rooms were not
furnished, nor was any payment expected from the wayfarer. At the same time,
some one was generally attached to the khan--mostly a foreigner--who would for
payment provide anything that might be needful, of which we have an instance in
the parabolic history of the Good Samaritan (Luke 10:35). Such hostelries are
mentioned so early as in the history of Moses (Gen 42:27; 43:21). Jeremiah
calls them "a place for strangers" (Jer 41:17), wrongly rendered
"habitation" in our Authorised Version. In the Talmud their
designations are either Greek or Latin, in Aramaic form--one of them being the
same as that used in Luke 10:34--proving that such places were chiefly provided
by and for strangers. *
* In the ancient Latin Itineraries of Palestine, journeys are
computed by mansiones
(night-quarters) and mutationes
(change of horses)--from five to eight such changes being computed for a day's
journey.
In
later times we also read of the oshpisa--evidently
from hospitium, and showing its Roman
origin--as a house of public entertainment, where such food as locusts,
pickled, or fried in flour or in honey, and Median or Babylonian beer, Egyptian
drink, and home-made cider or wine, were sold; such proverbs circulating among
the boon companions as "To eat without drinking is like devouring one's
own blood" (Shab. 41 a), and
where wild noise and games of chance were indulged in by those who wasted their
substance by riotous living. In such places the secret police, whom Herod
employed, would ferret out the opinions of the populace while over their cups.
That police must have been largely employed. According to Josephus (Anti. xv, 366) spies beset the people,
alike in town and country, watching their conversations in the unrestrained
confidence of friendly intercourse. Herod himself is said to have acted in that
capacity, and to have lurked about the streets at night-time in disguise to
overhear or entrap unwary citizens. Indeed, at one time the city seems almost
to have been under martial law, the citizens being forbidden "to meet
together, to walk or eat together,"--presumably to hold public meetings,
demonstrations, or banquets. History sufficiently records what terrible
vengeance followed the slightest suspicion. The New Testament account of the
murder of all the little children at Bethlehem (Matt 2:16), in hope of
destroying among them the royal scion of David, is thoroughly in character with
all that we know of Herod and his reign. There is at last indirect confirmation
of this narrative in Talmudical writings, as there is evidence that all the
genealogical registers in the Temple were destroyed by order of Herod. This is
a most remarkable fact. The Jews retaliated by an intensity of hatred which
went so far as to elevate the day of Herod's death (2 Shebet) into an annual
feast-day, on which all mourning was prohibited.
But
whether passing through town or country, by quiet side-roads or along the great
highway, there was one sight and scene which must constantly have forced itself
upon the attention of the traveller, and, if he were of Jewish descent, would
ever awaken afresh his indignation and hatred. Whithersoever he went, he
encountered in city or country the well-known foreign tax-gatherer, and was met
by his insolence, by his vexatious intrusion, and by his exactions. The fact
that he was the symbol of Israel's subjection to foreign domination, galling
though it was, had probably not so much to do with the bitter hatred of the
Rabbinists towards the class of tax-farmers (Moches) and tax-collectors (Gabbai),
both of whom were placed wholly outside the pale of Jewish society, as that
they were so utterly shameless and regardless in their unconscientious
dealings. For, ever since their return from Babylon, the Jews must, with a
brief interval, have been accustomed to foreign taxation. At the time of Ezra
(Ezra 4:13,20, 7:24) they paid to the Persian monarch "toll, tribute, and
custom"--middah, belo, and halach--or rather "ground-tax"
(income and property-tax?), "custom" (levied on all that was for
consumption, or imported), and "toll," or road-money. Under the reign
of the Ptolemies the taxes seem to have been farmed to the highest bidder, the
price varying from eight to sixteen talents--that is, from about 3,140 pounds
to about 6,280 pounds--a very small sum indeed, which enabled the Palestine
tax-farmers to acquire immense wealth, and that although they had continually
to purchase arms and court favour (Josephus, Ant. xii, 154-185). During the Syrian rule the taxes seem to have
consisted of tribute, duty on salt, a third of the produce of all that was
sown, and one-half of that from fruit-trees, besides poll-tax, custom duty, and
an uncertain kind of tax, called "crown-money" (the aurum coronarium of the Romans),
originally an annual gift of a crown of gold, but afterwards compounded for in
money (Josephus,Ant. xii, 129-137).
Under the Herodians the royal revenue seems to have been derived from crown
lands, from a property and income-tax, from import and export duties, and from
a duty on all that was publicly sold and bought, to which must be added a tax
upon houses in Jerusalem.
Heavily
as these exactions must have weighed upon a comparatively poor and chiefly
agricultural population, they refer only to civil taxation, not to religious dues (see The Temple).
But, even so, we have not exhausted the list of contributions demanded of a
Jew. For, every town and community levied its own taxes for the maintenance of
synagogue, elementary schools, public baths, the support of the poor, the
maintenance of public roads, city walls, and gates, and other general
requirements. It must, however, be admitted that the Jewish authorities
distributed this burden of civic taxation both easily and kindly, and that they
applied the revenues derived from it for the public welfare in a manner
scarcely yet attained in the most civilized countries. The Rabbinical
arrangements for public education, health, and charity were, in every respect,
far in advance of modern legislation, although here also they took care
themselves not to take the grievous burdens which they laid upon others, by
expressly exempting from civic taxes all those who devoted themselves to the
study of the law.
But the
Roman taxation, which bore upon Israel with such crushing weight, was quite of
its own kind--systematic, cruel, relentless, and utterly regardless. In
general, the provinces of the Roman Empire, and what of Palestine belonged to
them, were subject to two great taxes--poll-tax (or rather income-tax) and
ground-tax. All property and income that fell not under the ground-tax was
subject to poll-tax; which amounted, for Syria and Cilicia, to one per cent.
The "poll-tax" was really twofold, consisting of income-tax and
head-money, the latter, of course, the same in all cases, and levied on all
persons (bond or free) up to the age of sixty-five--women being liable from the
age of twelve and men from that of fourteen. Landed property was subject to a
tax of one-tenth of all grain, and one-fifth of the wine and fruit grown,
partly paid in product and partly commuted into money. *
* Northern Africa alone (exclusive of Egypt) furnished Rome, by
way of taxation, with sufficient corn to last eight months, and the city of
Alexandria to last four months (Jewish
War, ii, 345-401).
Besides
these, there was tax and duty on all imports and exports, levied on the great
public highways and in the seaports. Then there was bridge-money and
road-money, and duty on all that was bought and sold in the towns. These, which
may be called the regular taxes, were irrespective of any forced contributions,
and of the support which had to be furnished to the Roman procurator and his
household and court at Caesarea. To avoid all possible loss to the treasury,
the proconsul of Syria, Quirinus (Cyrenius), had taken a regular census to show
the number of the population and their means. This was a terrible crime in the
eyes of the Rabbis, who remembers that, if numbering the people had been
reckoned such great sin of old, the evil must be an hundredfold increased, if
done by heathens and for their own purposes. Another offence lay in the
thought, that tribute, hitherto only given to Jehovah, was now to be paid to a
heathen emperor. "Is it lawful to pay tribute unto Caesar?" was a
sore question, which many an Israelite put to himself as he placed the
emperor's poll-tax beside the half-shekel of the sanctuary, and the tithe of
his field, vineyard, and orchard, claimed by the tax-gatherer, along with that
which he had hitherto only given unto the Lord. Even the purpose with which
this inquiry was brought before Christ--to entrap Him in a political
denunciation--shows, how much it was agitated among patriotic Jews; and it cost
rivers of blood before it was not answered, but silenced.
The
Romans had a peculiar way of levying these taxes--not directly, but
indirectly--which kept the treasury quite safe, whatever harm it might inflict
on the taxpayer, while at the same time it threw upon him the whole cost of the
collection. Senators and magistrates were prohibited from engaging in business
or trade; but the highest order, the equestrian, was largely composed of great
capitalists. These Roman knights formed joint-stock companies, which bought at
public auction the revenues of a province at a fixed price, generally for five
years. The board had its chairman, or magister,
and its offices at Rome. These were the real Publicani, or publicans, who often
underlet certain of the taxes. The Publicani, or those who held from them,
employed either slaves or some of the lower classes in the country as
tax-gatherers--the publicans of the New Testament. Similarly, all other imposts
were farmed and collected; some of them being very onerous, and amounting to an
ad valorem duty of two and a half, of
five, and in articles of luxury even of twelve and a half per cent.
Harbour-dues were higher than ordinary tolls, and smuggling or a false
declaration was punished by confiscation of the goods. Thus the publicans also
levied import and export dues, bridge-toll, road-money, town-dues, etc.; and,
if the peaceable inhabitant, the tiller of the soil, the tradesman, or
manufacturer was constantly exposed to their exactions, the traveller, the
caravan, or the pedlar encountered their vexatious presence at every bridge,
along the road, and at the entrance to cities. Every bale had to be unloaded,
and all its contents tumbled about and searched; even letters were opened; and
it must have taken more than Eastern patience to bear their insolence and to
submit to their "unjust accusations" in arbitrarily fixing the return
from land or income, or the value of goods, etc. For there was no use appealing
against them, although the law allowed this, since the judges themselves were
the direct beneficiaries by the revenue; for they before whom accusations on
this score would have to be laid, belonged to the order of knights, who were
the very persons implicated in the farming of the revenue. Of course, the
joint-stock company of Publicani at Rome expected its handsome dividends; so
did the tax-gatherers in the provinces, and those to whom they on occasions
sublet the imposts. All wanted to make money of the poor people; and the cost
of the collection had of course to be added to the taxation. We can quite
understand how Zaccheus, one of the supervisors of these tax-gatherers in the
district of Jericho, which, from its growth and export of balsam, must have
yielded a large revenue, should, in remembering his past life, have at once said:
"If I have taken anything from any man by false accusation"--or,
rather, "Whatever I have wrongfully exacted of any man." For nothing
was more common than for the publican to put a fictitious value on property or
income. Another favourite trick of theirs was to advance the tax to those who
were unable to pay, and then to charge usurious interest on what had thereby
become a private debt. How summarily and harshly such debts were exacted,
appears from the New Testament itself. In Matthew 18:28 we read of a creditor
who, for the small debt of one hundred denars, seizes the debtor by the throat
in the open street, and drags him to prison; the miserable man, in his fear of
the consequences, in vain falling down at his feet, and beseeching him to have
patience, in not exacting immediate full payment. What these consequences were,
we learn from the same parable, where the king threatens not only to sell off
all that his debtor has, but even himself, his wife, and children into slavery
(v 25). And what short shrift such an unhappy man had to expect from "the
magistrate," appears from the summary procedure, ending in imprisonment
till "the last mite" had been paid, described in Luke 12:58.
However,
therefore, in far-off Rome, Cicero might describe the Publicani as "the
flower of knighthood, the ornament of the state, and the strength of the
republic," or as "the most upright and respected men," the
Rabbis in distant Palestine might be excused for their intense dislike of
"the publicans," even although it went to the excess of declaring
them incapable of bearing testimony in a Jewish court of law, of forbidding to
receive their charitable gifts, or even to change money out of their treasury (Baba K. x. 1), of ranking them not only
with harlots and heathens, but with highwaymen and murderers (Ned. iii. 4), and of even declaring them
excommunicate. Indeed, it was held lawful to make false returns, to speak
untruth, or almost to use any means to avoid paying taxes (Ned. 27 b; 28 a). And about the time of Christ the burden of such
exactions must have been felt all the heavier on account of a great financial
crisis in the Roman Empire (in the year 33 or our era), which involved so many
in bankruptcy, and could not have been without its indirect influence even upon
distant Palestine.
Of such
men--despised Galileans, unlettered fishermen, excommunicated publicans--did
the blessed Lord, in His self-humiliation, choose His closest followers, His
special apostles! What a contrast to the Pharisaical notions of the Messiah and
His kingdom! What a lesson to show, that it was not "by might nor by
power," but by His Spirit, and that God had chosen the base things of this
world, and things that were despised, to confound things that were mighty!
Assuredly, this offers a new problem, and one harder of solution than many
others, to those who would explain everything by natural causes. Whatever they
may say of the superiority of Christ's teaching to account for his success, no
religion could ever have been more weighted; no popular cause could ever have
presented itself under more disadvantageous circumstances than did the Gospel
of Christ to the Jews of Palestine. Even from this point of view, to the
historical student familiar with the outer and inner life of that period, there
is no other explanation of the establishment of Christ's kingdom than the power
of the Holy Ghost.
Such a
custom-house officer was Matthew Levi, when the voice of our Lord, striking to
the inmost depths of his heart, summoned him to far different work. It was a wonder
that the Holy One should speak to such an one as he; and oh! in what different
accents from what had ever fallen on his ears. But it was not merely
condescension, kindness, sympathy, even familiar intercourse with one usually
regarded as a social pariah; it was the closest fellowship; it was reception
into the innermost circle; it was a call to the highest and holiest work which
the Lord offered to Levi. And the busy road on which he sat to collect customs
and dues would now no more know the familiar face of Levi, otherwise than as
that of a messenger of peace, who brought glad tidings of great joy.
Chapter 5
In Judaea
If
Galilee could boast of the beauty of its scenery and the fruitfulness of its
soil; of being the mart of a busy life, and the highway of intercourse with the
great world outside Palestine, Judaea would neither covet nor envy such
advantages. Hers was quite another and a peculiar claim. Galilee might be the
outer court, but Judaea was like the inner sanctuary of Israel. True, its landscapes
were comparatively barren, its hills bare and rocky, its wilderness lonely; but
around those grey limestone mountains gathered the sacred history--one might
almost say, the romance and religion of Israel. Turning his back on the
luxurious richness of Galilee, the pilgrim, even in the literal sense,
constantly went up towards Jerusalem. Higher and higher rose the everlasting
hills, till on the uppermost he beheld the sanctuary of his God, standing out
from all around, majestic in the snowy pureness of its marble and glittering
gold. As the hum of busy life gradually faded from his hearing, and he advanced
into the solemn stillness and loneliness, the well-known sites which he
successively passed must have seemed to wake the echoes of the history of his
people. First, he approached Shiloh,
Israel's earliest sanctuary, where, according to tradition, the Ark had rested
for 370 years less one. Next came Bethel,
with its sacred memorial of patriarchal history. There, as the Rabbis had it,
even the angel of death was shorn of his power. Then he stood on the plateau of
Ramah, with the neighbouring heights
of Gibeon and Gibeah, round which so many events in Jewish history had
clustered. In Ramah Rachel died, and was buried. *
* This appears, to me at least, the inevitable inference from 1
Samuel 10:2, 3, and Jeremiah 31:15. Most writers have concluded from Genesis
35:16, 19, that Rachel was buried close by Bethlehem, but the passage does not necessarily imply this. The oldest
Jewish Commentary (Sifre, ed. Vienna,
p. 146) supports the view given above in the text. M. Neubauer suggests that
Rachel had died in the possession of Ephraim, and been buried at Bethlehem. The
hypothesis is ingenious but fanciful.
We know
that Jacob set up a pillar on her grave. Such is the reverence of Orientals for
the resting-places of celebrated historical personages, that we may well
believe it to have been the same pillar which, according to an eye-witness,
still marked the site at the time of our Lord (Book of Jubil. cxxxii Apud Hausrath,
Neutest. Zeitg. p. 26). Opposite to it were the graves of Bilhah and of
Dinah (c. p. 34). Only five miles from Jerusalem, this pillar was, no doubt, a
well-known landmark. by this memorial of Jacob's sorrow and shame had been the
sad meeting-place of the captives when about to be carried into Babylon (Jer
40:1). There was bitter wailing at parting from those left behind, and in weary
prospect of hopeless bondage, and still bitterer lamentation, as in the sight
of friends, relations and countrymen, the old and the sick, the weakly, and
women and children were pitilessly slaughtered, not to encumber the conqueror's
homeward march. Yet a third time was Rachel's pillar, twice before the memorial
of Israel's sorrow and shame, to re-echo her lamentation over yet sorer
captivity and slaughter, when the Idumaean Herod massacred her innocent
children, in the hope of destroying with them Israel's King and Israel's
kingdom. Thus was her cup of former bondage and slaughter filled, and the words
of Jeremy the prophet fulfilled, in which he had depicted Rachel's sorrow over
her children (Matt 2:17,18).
But
westward from those scenes, where the mountains shelved down, or more abruptly
descended towards the Shephelah, or
wolds by the sea, were the scenes of former triumphs. Here Joshua had pursued
the kings of the south; there Samson had come down upon the Philistines, and
here for long years had war been waged against the arch-enemy of Israel,
Philistia. Turning thence to the south, beyond the capital was royal Bethlehem,
and still farther the priest-city Hebron, with its caves holding Israel's most
precious dust. That highland plateau was the wilderness of Judaea, variously
named from the villages which at long distances dotted it; * desolate, lonely,
tenanted only by the solitary shepherd, or the great proprietor, like Nabal,
whose sheep pastured along it heights and in its glens.
* Such as Tekoah, Engedi, Ziph, Maon, and Beersheba, which gave
their names to districts in the wilderness of Judaea.
This
had long been the home of outlaws, or of those who, in disgust with the world,
had retired from its fellowship. These limestone caves had been the
hiding-place of David and his followers; and many a band had since found
shelter in these wilds. Here also John the Baptist prepared for his work, and
there, at the time of which we write, was the retreat of the Essenes, whom a
vain hope of finding purity in separation from the world and its contact had
brought to these solitudes. Beyond, deep down in a mysterious hollow. stretched
the smooth surface of the Dead Sea, a perpetual memorial of God and of
judgment. On its western shore rose the castle which Herod had named after
himself, and farther south that almost inaccessible fastness of Masada, the
scene of the last tragedy in the great Jewish war. Yet from the wild
desolateness of the Dead Sea it was but a few hours to what seemed almost an
earthly paradise. Flanked and defended by four surrounding forts, lay the
important city of Jericho. Herod had built its walls, its theatre and
amphitheatre; Archelaus its new palace, surrounded by splendid gardens. Through
Jericho led the pilgrim way from Galilee, followed by our Lord Himself (Luke
19:1); and there also passed the great caravan-road, which connected Arabia
with Damascus. The fertility of its soil, and its tropical produce, were almost
proverbial. Its palm-groves and gardens of roses, but especially its
balsam-plantations, of which the largest was behind the royal palace, were the
fairy land of the old world. But this also was only a source of gain to the
hated foreigner. Rome had made it a central station for the collection of tax
and custom, known to us from Gospel history as that by which the chief publican
Zaccheus had gotten his wealth. Jericho, with its general trade and its traffic
in balsam--not only reputed the sweetest perfume, but also a cherished medicine
in antiquity--was a coveted prize to all around. A strange setting for such a
gem were its surroundings. There was the deep depression of the Arabah, through which the Jordan wound,
first with tortuous impetuosity, and then, as it neared the Dead Sea, seemingly
almost reluctant to lose its waters in that slimy mass (Pliny, Hist. Nat. vi. 5, 2). Pilgrims, priests,
traders, robbers, anchorites, wild fanatics, such were the figures to be met on
that strange scene; and almost within hearing were the sacred sounds from the
Temple-mount in the distance. *
* According to the Jerusalem Talmud (Succ. v. 3) six different acts of ministry in the Temple were heard
as far as Jericho, and the smell of the burning incense also could be perceived
there. We need scarcely say that this was a gross exaggeration.
It
might be so, as the heathen historian put it in regard to Judaea, that no one
could have wished for its own sake to wage serious warfare for its possession
(Strabo, Geogr. xvi. 2). The Jew
would readily concede this. It was not material wealth which attracted him
hither, although the riches brought into the Temple from all quarters of the
world ever attracted the cupidity of the Gentiles. To the Jew this was the true
home of his soul, the centre of his inmost life, the longing of his heart.
"If I forget thee, O Jerusalem, let my right hand forget her
cunning," sang they who sat by the rivers of Babylon, weeping as they
remembered Zion. "If I do not remember thee, let my tongue cleave to the
roof of my mouth; if I prefer not Jerusalem above my chief joy" (Psa
137:5,6). It is from such pilgrim-psalms by the way as Psalm 84 or from the
Songs of Ascent to the Holy City (commonly known as the Psalms of Degrees),
that we learn the feelings of Israel, culminating in this mingled outpouring of
prayer and praise, with which they greeted the city of their longings as first
it burst on their view:
Jehovah hath chosen Zion;
He hath desired it for His habitation.
This is my rest for ever:
Here will I dwell, for I desire after it!
I will abundantly bless her provision:
I will satisfy her poor with bread.
I will also clothe her priests with salvation:
And her saints shall shout aloud for joy.
There will I make the horn of David to bud:
I ordain a lamp for Mine anointed.
His enemies will I clothe with shame:
But upon himself shall his crown flourish.
Psalm 132:13-18
Words
these, true alike in their literal and spiritual applications; highest hopes
which, for nigh two thousand years, have formed and still form part of Israel's
daily prayer, when they plead: "Speedily cause Thou 'the Branch of David,'
Thy servant, to shoot forth, and exalt Thou his horn through Thy
salvation" (this is the fifteenth of the eighteen "benedictions"
in the daily prayers). Alas, that Israel knows not the fulfilment of these
hopes already granted and expressed in the thanksgiving of the father of the
Baptist: "Blessed be the Lord God of Israel; for He hath visited and
redeemed His people, and hath raised up an horn of salvation for us in the
house of His servant David; as He spake by the mouth of His holy prophets,
which have been since the world began" (Luke 1:68-70).
Such
blessings, and much more, were not only objects of hope, but realities alike to
the Rabbinist and the unlettered Jew. They determined him willingly to bend the
neck under a yoke of ordinances otherwise unbearable; submit to claims and
treatment against which his nature would otherwise have rebelled, endure scorn
and persecutions which would have broken any other nationality and crushed any
other religion. To the far exiles of the Dispersion, this was the one fold,
with its promise of good shepherding, of green pastures, and quiet waters. Judaea
was, so to speak, their Campo Santo,
with the Temple in the midst of it, as the symbol and prophecy of Israel's
resurrection. To stand, if it were but once, within its sacred courts, to
mingle with its worshippers, to bring offerings, to see the white-robed throng
of ministering priests, to hear the chant of Levites, to watch the smoke of
sacrifices uprising to heaven--to be there, to take part in it was the
delicious dream of life, a very heaven upon earth, the earnest of fulfilling
prophecy. No wonder, that on the great feasts the population of Jerusalem and
of its neighbourhood, so far as reckoned within its sacred girdle, swelled to
millions, among whom were "devout men, out of every nation under
heaven" (Acts 2:5), or that treasure poured in from all parts of the
inhabited world. And this increasingly, as sign after sign seemed to indicate
that "the End" was nearing. Surely the sands of the times of the
Gentiles must have nearly run out. The promised Messiah might at any moment
appear and "restore the kingdom to Israel." From the statements of
Josephus we know that the prophecies of Daniel were specially resorted to, and
a mass of the most interesting, though tangled, apocalyptic literature, dating
from that period, shows what had been the popular interpretation of unfulfilled
prophecy. The oldest Jewish paraphrases of Scripture, or Targumim, breathe the same spirit. Even the great heathen
historians note this general expectancy of an impending Jewish world-empire,
and trace to it the origin of the rebellions against Rome. Not even the
allegorising Jewish philosophers of Alexandria remained uninfluenced by the
universal hope. Outside Palestine all eyes were directed towards Judaea, and
each pilgrim band on its return, or wayfaring brother on his journey, might
bring tidings of startling events. Within the land the feverish anxiety of
those who watched the scene not unfrequently rose to delirium and frenzy. Only
thus can we account for the appearance of so many false Messiahs and for the
crowds which, despite repeated disappointments, were ready to cherish the most
unlikely anticipations. It was thus that a Theudas
could persuade "a great part of the people" to follow him to the
brink of Jordan, in the hope of seeing its waters once more miraculously
divide, as before Moses, and an Egyptian impostor induce them to go out to the
Mount of Olives in the expectation of seeing the walls of Jerusalem fall down
at his command (Josephus, Ant. xx,
167-172). Nay, such was the infatuation of fanaticism, that while the Roman
soldiers were actually preparing to set the Temple on fire, a false prophet
could assemble 6,000 men, women, and children, in its courts and porches to
await then and there a miraculous deliverance from heaven (Josephus, Jewish War, vi, 287). Nor did even the
fall of Jerusalem quench these expectations, till a massacre, more terrible in
some respects than that at the fall of Jerusalem, extinguished in blood the
last public Messianic rising against Rome under Bar Cochab.
For,
however misdirected--so far as related to the person of the Christ and the
nature of His kingdom--not to the fact or time of His coming, nor yet to the
character of Rome--such thoughts could not be uprooted otherwise than with the
history and religion of Israel. The New Testament process upon them, as well as
the Old; Christians and Jews alike cherished them. In the language of St. Paul,
this was "the hope of the promise made of God unto our fathers: unto which
our twelve tribes, instantly serving God day and night, hope to come"
(Acts 26:6,7). It was this which sent the thrill of expectancy through the
whole nation, and drew crowds to Jordan, when an obscure anchorite, who did not
even pretend to attest his mission by any miracle, preached repentance in view
of the near coming of the kingdom of God. It was this which turned all eyes to
Jesus of Nazareth, humble and unpretending as were His origin, His
circumstances, and His followers, and which diverted the attention of the
people even from the Temple to the far-off lake of despised Galilee. And it was
this which opened every home to the messengers whom Christ sent forth, by two
and two, and even after the Crucifixion, every synagogue, to the apostles and
preachers from Judaea. The title "Son of man" was familiar to those
who had drawn their ideas of the Messiah from the well-known pages of Daniel.
The popular apocalyptic literature of the period, especially the so-called
"Book of Enoch," not only kept this designation in popular memory,
but enlarged on the judgment which He was to execute on Gentile kings and
nations." * "Wilt Thou at this time restore the kingdom to
Israel?" was a question out of the very heart of Israel. Even John the
Baptist, in the gloom of his lonely prison, staggered not at the person of the
Messiah, but at the manner in which He seemed to found His kingdom. ** He had
expected to hear the blows of that axe which he had lifted fall upon the barren
tree, and had to learn that the innermost secret of that kingdom--carried not
in earthquake of wrath, nor in whirlwind of judgment, but breathed in the still
small voice of love and pity--was comprehension, not exclusion; healing, not
destruction.
* The following as a specimen must suffice for the present:
"And this Son of man, whom thou hast seen, shall stir up the kings and the
mighty from their layers, and the powerful from their thrones, and shall loose
the bridles of the mighty and break in pieces the teeth of sinners. And He
shall drive the kings from their thrones and from their empires, if they do not
exalt nor praise Him, nor gratefully own from whence the kingdom has been
entrusted to them. And He shall drive away the face of the mighty, and shame
shall fill them: darkness shall be their dwelling and worms their bed, and they
shall have no hope of rising from their beds, because they do not exalt the
name of the Lord of spirits...And they shall be driven forth out of the homes
of His congregation and of the faithful" (Book of Enoch, xlvi. 4,5,6,8). A
full discussion of this most important subject, and, indeed, of many kindred
matters, must be reserved for a work on the Life and Times of our Lord.
** The passage above referred to has a most important apologetic
interest. None but a truthful history would have recorded the doubts of John
the Baptist; especially when they brought forward the real difficulties which
the mission of Christ raised in the popular mind; least of all would it have
followed up the statement of these difficulties by such an encomium as the
Saviour passed upon John.
As for
the Rabbis, the leaders of public opinion, their position towards the kingdom
was quite different. Although in the rising of Bar Cochab the great Rabbi Akiba
acted as the religious standard-bearer, he may be looked upon as almost an
exception. His character was that of an enthusiast, his history almost a
romance. But, in general, the Rabbis did not identify themselves with the
popular Messianic expectations. Alike the Gospel-history and their writings
show not merely that anti-spiritual opposition to the Church which we might
have expected, but coldness and distance in regard to all such movements. Legal
rigorism and merciless bigotry are not fanaticism. The latter is chiefly the
impulse of the ill-informed. Even their contemptuous turning away from
"this people which knoweth not the law," as "accursed,"
proves them incapable of a fanaticism which recognises a brother in every one
whose heart burns with the same fire, no matter what his condition otherwise.
The great text-book of Rabbinism, the Mishnah, is almost entirely un-Messianic,
one might say un-dogmatical. The method of the Rabbis was purely logical. Where
not a record of facts or traditions, the Mishnah is purely a handbook of legal
determinations in their utmost logical sequences, only enlivened by discussions
or the tale of instances in point. The whole tendency of this system was
anti-Messianic. Not but that in souls so devout and natures so ardent
enthusiasm might be kindled, but that all their studies and pursuits went in
the contrary direction. Besides, they knew full well how little of power was
left them, and they dreaded losing even this. The fear of Rome constantly
haunted them. Even at the destruction of Jerusalem the leading Rabbis aimed to
secure their safety, and their after history shows, frequently recurring,
curious instances of Rabbinical intimacy with their Roman oppressors. The
Sanhedrim spoke their inmost apprehensions, when in that secret session they
determined to kill Jesus from fear that, if He were allowed to go on, and all
men were to believe on Him, the Romans would come and take away both their
place and nation (John 11:48). Yet not one candid mind among them discussed the
reality of His miracles; not one generous voice was raised to assert the
principle of the Messiah's claims and kingdom, even though they had rejected
those of Jesus of Nazareth! The question of the Messiah might come up as a
speculative point; it might force itself upon the attention of the Sanhedrim;
but it was not of personal, practical, life-interest to them. It may mark only
one aspect of the question, and that an extreme one, yet even as such it is
characteristic, when a Rabbi could assert that "between the present and
the days of the Messiah there was only this difference, Israel's
servitude."
Quite
other matters engrossed the attention of the Rabbis. It was the present and the
past, not the future, which occupied them--the present as fixing all legal determinations, and the past as giving sanction to this. Judaea
proper was the only place where the Shechinah
had dwelt, the land where Jehovah had caused His temple to be reared, the seat
of the Sanhedrim, the place where alone learning and real piety were
cultivated. From this point of view everything was judged. Judaea was
"grain, Galilee straw, and beyond Jordan chaff." To be a Judaean was
to be "an Hebrew of the Hebrews." It has already been stated what
reproach the Rabbis attached to Galilee in regard to its language, manners, and
neglect of regular study. In some respects the very legal observances, as
certainly social customs, were different in Judaea from Galilee. Only in Judaea
could Rabbis be ordained by the laying on of hands; only there could the
Sanhedrim in solemn session declare and proclaim the commencement of each
month, on which the arrangement of the festive calendar depended. Even after
the stress of political necessity had driven the Rabbis to Galilee, they
returned to Lydda for the purpose, and it needed a sharp struggle before they
transferred the privilege of Judaea to other regions in the third century of
our era (Jer. Sanh. i. 1, 18). The
wine for use in the Temple was brought exclusively from Judaea, not only
because it was better, but because the transport through Samaria would have
rendered it defiled. Indeed, the Mishnah mentions the names of the five towns
whence it was obtained. Similarly, the oil used was derived either from Judaea,
or, if from Peraea, the olives only were brought, to be crushed in Jerusalem.
The
question what cities were really Jewish was of considerable importance, so far
as concerned ritual questions, and it occupied the earnest attention of the
Rabbis. It is not easy to fix the exact boundaries of Judaea proper towards the
north-west. To include the sea-shore in the province of Samaria is a popular
mistake. It certainly was never reckoned with it. According to Josephus (Jewish War, iii, 35-58) Judaea proper
extended along the sea-shore as far north as Ptolemais or Acco. The Talmud
seems to exclude at least the northern cities. In the New Testament there is a
distinction made between Caesarea and the province of Judaea (Acts 12:19,
21:10). This affords one of the indirect evidences not only of the intimate
acquaintance of the writer with strictly Rabbinical views, but also of the
early date of the composition of the Book of Acts. For, at a later period
Caesarea was declared to belong to Judaea, although its harbour was excluded
from such privileges, and all east and west of it pronounced
"defiled." Possibly, it may have been added to the cities of Judaea,
simply because afterwards so many celebrated Rabbis resided there. The
importance attaching to Caesarea in connection with the preaching of the Gospel
and the history of St. Paul, and the early and flourishing Christian churches
there established give fresh interest to all notices of the place. Only those
from Jewish sources can here engage our attention. It were out of place here to
describe the political importance of Caesarea, as the seat of the Roman power,
or its magnificent harbour and buildings, or its wealth and influence. In
Jewish writings it bears the same name by which we know it, though at times it
is designated after its fortifications (Migdal Shur, M. Zor, M. Nassi), or
after its harbour (Migdal Shina), once also by its ancient name, the tower of
Straton. The population consisted of a mixture of Jews, Greeks, Syrians, and
Samaritans, and tumults between them were the first signal of the great Jewish
war. The Talmud calls it "the capital of the kings." As the seat of
the Roman power it was specially hateful to the Jews. Accordingly it is
designated as the "daughter of Edom--the city of abomination and
blasphemy," although the district was, for its riches, called "the
land of life." As might be expected, constant difficulties arose between
the Jewish and Roman authorities in Caesarea, and bitter are the complaints
against the unrighteousness of heathen judges. We can readily understand, that
to a Jew Caesarea was the symbol of Rome, Rome of Edom--and Edom was to be
destroyed! In fact, in their view Jerusalem and Caesarea could not really
co-exist. It is in this sense that we account for the following curious
passage: "If you are told that Jerusalem and Caesarea are both standing,
or that they are both destroyed, believe it not; but if you are told that one
of them is destroyed and the other standing, then believe it" (Gitt. 16 a; Meg. 6 a). It is interesting to know that on account of the foreign
Jews resident in Caesarea, the Rabbis allowed the principal prayers to be said
in Greek, as being the vernacular; and that, from the time of the evangelist
Philip, good work was done for Christ among its resident Jews. Indeed, Jewish
writings contain special notice of controversies there between Jews and
Christians.
A brief
summary of Jewish notices of certain other towns in Judaea, mentioned also in
the New Testament, may throw some additional light on the sacred narratives. In
general, the Mishnah divided Judaea proper into three parts--mountain,
Shephelah, and valley (Shev. ix 2),
to which we must add the city of Jerusalem as a separate district. And here we
have another striking evidence of the authenticity of the New Testament, and
especially of the writings of St. Luke. Only one intimately acquainted with the
state of matters at the time would, with the Rabbis, have distinguished
Jerusalem as a district separate from all the rest of Judaea, as St. Luke
markedly does on several occasions (Luke 5:17; Acts 1:8, 10:39). When the
Rabbis speak of "the mountain," they refer to the district north-east
and north of Jerusalem, also known as "the royal mount." The
Shephelah, of course, is the country along the sea-shore. All the rest is
included in the term "valley." It need scarcely be explained that, as
the Jerusalem Talmud tells us, this is merely a general classification, which
must not be too closely pressed. Of the eleven toparchies into which, according to Josephus (Pliny enumerates only
ten), Judaea proper was arranged, the Rabbis take no notice, although some of
their names have been traced in Talmudical writings. These provinces were no
doubt again subdivided into districts or hyparchies, just as the towns were
into quarters or hegemonies, both terms occurring in the Talmud. The Rabbis
forbade the exportation of provisions from Palestine, even into Syria.
Travelling
southward from Caesarea we are in the plain of Sharon, whose beauty and
richness are so celebrated in Holy Scripture (Cant 2:1; Isa 35:2). This plain
extends as far as Lydda, where it merges into that of Darom, which stretches farther southwards. In accordance with the statements
of Holy Scripture (Isa 65:10) the plain of Sharon was always celebrated for its
pasturage. According to the Talmud most of the calves for sacrifices were
brought from that district. The wine of Sharon was celebrated, and, for
beverage, supposed to be mixed with one-third of water. The plain was also well
known for the manufacture of pottery; but it must have been of an inferior
kind, since the Mishnah (Baba K. vi.
2) in enumerating for what proportion of damaged goods a purchaser might not
claim compensation, allows not less than ten per cent for breakage in the
pottery of Sharon. In Jer. Sotah
viii. 3, we read that the permission to return from war did not apply to those
who had built brick houses in Sharon, it being explained that the clay was so
bad, that the houses had to be rebuilt within seven years. Hence also the
annual prayer of the high-priest on the Day of Atonement, that the houses of
the men of Sharon should not become their graves (see The Temple). Antipatris, the place where the foot soldiers had left St. Paul in
charge of the horsemen (Acts 23:31), had once been the scene of a very
different array. For it was here that, according to tradition (Yoma, 69 a), the priesthood, under Simon
the Just, had met Alexander the Great in that solemn procession, which secured
the safety of the Temple. In Talmudical writings it bears the same name, which
was given it by Herod, in memory of his father Antipater (Ant. vi, 5.2). The name of Chephar Zaba, however, also occurs,
possibly that of an adjoining locality. In Sanh.
94 b, we read that Hezekiah had suspended a board at the entrance of the Beth Midrash (or college), with the
notification that whoever studied not the Law was to be destroyed. Accordingly
they searched from Dan to Beersheba, and found not a single unlettered person,
nor yet from Gebath to Antipatris, boy or girl, man or woman, who was not fully
versed in all the legal ordinances concerning clean and unclean.
Another
remarkable illustration of the New Testament is afforded by Lydda, the Talmudical Lod or Lud. We
read that, in consequence of the labours of St. Peter and the miracle wrought
on Aeneas, "all that dwelt at Lydda and Saron...turned to the Lord"
(Acts 9:35). The brief notice of Lydda given in this narrative of the apostle's
labours, is abundantly confirmed by Talmudical notices, although, of course, we
must not expect them to describe the progress of Christianity. We can readily
believe that Lydda had its congregation of "saints," almost from the
first, since it was (Maas. Sh. v. 2)
within an easy day's journey west of Jerusalem. Indeed, as the Talmud explains,
the second tithes (Deu 14:22, 26:12) from Lydda could not be converted into
money, but had to be brought to the city itself, so "that the streets of
Jerusalem might be garlanded with fruits." The same passage illustrates
the proximity of Lydda to the city, and the frequent intercourse between the
two, by saying that the women of Lydda mixed their dough, went up to Jerusalem,
prayed in the Temple, and returned before it had fermented. Similarly, we infer
from Talmudical documents that Lydda had been the residence of many Rabbis
before the destruction of Jerusalem. After that event, it became the seat of a
very celebrated school, presided over by some of the leaders of Jewish thought.
It was this school which boldly laid it down, that, to avoid death, every
ordinance of the Law might be broken, except those in regard to idolatry,
incest, and murder. It was in Lydda, also, that two brothers voluntarily
offered themselves victims to save their co-religionists from slaughter,
threatened because a body had been found, whose death was imputed to the Jews.
It sounds like a sad echo of the taunts addressed by "chief priests,"
"scribes and elders," to Jesus on the cross (Matt 27:41-43) when, on
the occasion just mentioned, the Roman thus addressed the martyrs: "If you
are of the people of Ananias, Mishael, and Azarias, let your God come, and save
you from my hand!" (Taan. 18,
6).
But a
much more interesting chain of evidence connects Lydda with the history of the
founding of the Church. It is in connection with Lydda and its tribunal, which
is declared to have been capable of pronouncing sentence of death, that our
blessed Lord and the Virgin Mother are introduced in certain Talmudical
passages, though with studiously and blasphemously altered names. The
statements are, in their present form, whether from ignorance, design, or in
consequence of successive alterations, confused, and they mix up different
events and persons in Gospel history; among other things representing our Lord
as condemned at Lydda. *
* May there not perhaps be some historical foundation even for
this statement? Could the secret gathering of "the chief priests and
Pharisees," mentioned in John 11:47, have taken place in Lydda (compare
vers. 54, 55)? Was it there, that Judas "communed with the chief priests
and captains, how he might betray Him unto them?" There were at any rate
obvious reasons for avoiding Jerusalem in all preliminary measures against
Jesus; and we know that, while the Temple stood, Lydda was the only place out
of Jerusalem which may be called a seat of the Rabbinical party.
But
there can be no reasonable question that they refer to our blessed Lord and His
condemnation for supposed blasphemy and seduction of the people, and that they
at least indicate a close connection between Lydda and the founding of
Christianity. It is a curious confirmation of the gospel history, that the
death of Christ is there described as having taken place "on the eve of
the Passover," remarkably bearing out not only the date of that event as
gathered from the synoptical gospels, but showing that the Rabbis at least knew
nothing of those Jewish scruples and difficulties, by which modern Gentile
writers have tried to prove the impossibility of Christ's condemnation on the
Paschal night. It has already been stated that, after the destruction of
Jerusalem, many and most celebrated Rabbis chose Lydda for their residence. But
the second century witnessed a great change. The inhabitants of Lydda are now
charged with pride, ignorance, and neglect of their religion. The Midrash (Esther 1:3) has it, that there
were "ten measures of wretchedness in the world. Nine of those belong to
Lod, the tenth to all the rest of the world." Lydda was the last place in
Judaea to which, after their migration into Galilee, the Rabbis resorted to fix
the commencement of the month. Jewish legend has it, that they were met by the
"evil eye," which caused their death. There may, perhaps, be an
allegorical allusion in this. Certain it is, that, at the time, Lydda was the
seat of a most flourishing Christian Church, and had its bishop. Indeed, a
learned Jewish writer has connected the changed Jewish feeling towards Lod with
the spread of Christianity. Lydda must have been a very beautiful and a very
busy place. The Talmud speaks in exaggerated terms of the honey of its dates (Cheth. iii. a), and the Mishnah (Baba M. iv. 3) refers to its merchants
as a numerous class, although their honesty is not extolled. *
* The Mishnah discusses how much profit a merchant is allowed to
take on an article, and within what period a purchaser, who finds himself
imposed upon, may return his purchase. The merchants of Lydda are certainly not
placed in this discussion in the most advantageous light.
Near
Lydda, eastwards, was the village of Chephar
Tabi. We might be tempted to derive from it the name of Tabitha (Acts
9:36), if it were not that the names Tabi and Tabitha had been so common at the
time in Palestine. There can be no question of the situation of Joppa, the modern Jaffa, where Peter saw
the vision which opened the door of the Church to the Gentiles. Many Rabbis are
mentioned in connection with Joppa. The town was destroyed by Vespasian. There
is a curious legend in the Midrash to
the effect that Joppa was not overwhelmed by the deluge. Could this have been
an attempt to insinuate the preservation and migration of men to distant parts
of the earth? The exact location of Emmaus,
for ever sacred to us by the manifestation of the Saviour to the two disciples
(Luke 24:13), is matter of controversy. On the whole, the weight of evidence
still inclines to the traditional site. *
* Modern writers mostly identify it with the present Kulonieh, colonia, deriving the name
from the circumstance that it was colonised by Roman soldiers. Lieut. Conder
suggests the modern Khamasa, about
eight miles from Jerusalem, as the site of Emmaus.
If so,
it had a considerable Jewish population, although it was also occupied by a
Roman garrison. Its climate and waters were celebrated, as also its
market-place. It is specially interesting to find that among the patrician
Jewish families belonging to the laity, who took part in the instrumental music
of the Temple, two--those of Pegarim and Zippariah--were from Emmaus, and also
that the priesthood were wont to intermarry with the wealthy Hebrews of that
place (Er. ii. 4). Gaza, on whose "desert" road
Philip preached to and baptized the Ethiopian eunuch, counted not fewer than
eight heathen temples, besides an idol-shrine just outside the city. Still Jews
were allowed to reside there, probably on account of its important market.
Only
two names yet remain to be mentioned, but those of the deepest and most solemn
interest. Bethlehem, the birthplace of our Lord, and Jerusalem, where He was
crucified. It deserves notice, that the answer which the Sanhedrists of old
gave to the inquiries of Herod (Matt 2:5) is equally returned in many
Talmudical passages, and with the same reference to Micah 5:2. It may therefore
be regarded as a settled point that, according to the Jewish fathers, Messiah,
the Son of David, was to be born in Bethlehem of Judah. But there is one
passage in the Mishnah which throws such peculiar light on the Gospel
narrative, that it will be best to give it in its entirety. We know that, on
the night in which our Saviour was born, the angels' message came to those who
probably alone of all in or near Bethlehem were "keeping watch." For,
close by Bethlehem, on the road to Jerusalem, was a tower, known as Migdal Eder, the "watch-tower of
the flock." For here was the station where shepherd watched their flocks
destined for sacrifices in the Temple. So well known was this, that if animals
were found as far from Jerusalem as Migdal Eder, and within that circuit on
every side, the males were offered as burnt-offerings, the females as
peace-offerings. *
* Formerly those who found such animals had out of their own means
to supply the necessary drink-offerings. But as this induced some not to bring
the animals to the Temple, it was afterwards decreed to supply the cost of the
drink-offerings from the Temple treasury (Shek.
vii. 5).
R.
Jehudah adds: "If suited for Paschal sacrifices, then they are Paschal
sacrifices, provided it be not more than thirty days before the feast" (Shekal. vii 4; compare also Jer. Kid. ii. 9). It seems of deepest
significance, almost like the fulfilment of type, that those shepherds who
first heard tidings of the Saviour's birth, who first listened to angels'
praises, were watching flocks destined to be offered as sacrifices in the
Temple. There was the type, and here the reality. At all times Bethlehem was
among "the least" in Judah--so small that the Rabbis do not even
refer to it in detail. The small village-inn was over-crowded, and the guests
from Nazareth found shelter only in the stable, * whose manger became the
cradle of the King of Israel.
* In Echa R. 72 a, there
is a tradition that the Messiah was to be born "in the Castle Arba of
Bethlehem Judah." Caspari quotes this in confirmation that the present
castellated monastery, in the cave of which is the traditional site of our
Lord's birth, marks the real spot. In the East such caves were often used as
stables.
It was
here that those who tended the sacrificial flocks, heaven-directed, found the
Divine Babe--significantly the first to see Him, to believe, and to adore. But
this is not all. It is when we remember, that presently these shepherds would
be in the Temple, and meet those who came thither to worship and to sacrifice,
that we perceive the full significance of what otherwise would have seemed
scarcely worth while noticing in connection with humble shepherds: "And
when they had seen it, they made known abroad the saying which was told them
concerning this child. And all they that heard it wondered at those things
which were told them by the shepherds" (Luke 2:17,18). Moreover, we can
understand the wonderful impression made on those in the courts of the Temple,
as, while they selected their sacrifices, the shepherds told the devout of the
speedy fulfilment of all these types in what they had themselves seen and heard
in that night of wonders; how eager, curious crowds might gather around to
discuss, to wonder, perhaps to mock; how the heart of "just and
devout" old Simeon would be gladdened within him, in expectation of the
near realisation of a life's hopes and prayers; and how aged Anna, and they who
like her "looked for redemption in Israel," would lift up their
heads, since their salvation was drawing nigh. Thus the shepherds would be the
most effectual heralds of the Messiah in the Temple, and both Simeon and Anna
be prepared for the time when the infant Saviour would be presented in the
sanctuary. But there is yet another verse which, as we may suggest, would find
a fuller explanation in the fact that these shepherds tended the Temple flocks.
When in Luke 2:20 we read that "the shepherds returned, glorifying and
praising God," the meaning in that connection * seems somewhat difficult
till we realise that, after bringing their flocks to the Temple, they would
return to their own homes, and carry with them, joyfully and gratefully,
tidings of the great salvation.
* Compare here verses 17, 18, which in point of time precede verse
20. The term diagnorizo, rendered in the Authorised Version "make known
abroad," and by Wahl "ultro citroque narro," does not seem
exhausted by the idea of conversation with the party in the "stable,"
or with any whom they might meet in "the field."
Lastly,
without entering into controversy, the passage from the Mishnah above quoted in
great measure disposes of the objection against the traditional date of our
Lord's birth, derived from the supposed fact, that the rains of December would
prevent the flocks being kept all night "in the field." For, in the
first place, these were flocks on their way to Jerusalem, and not regularly
pasturing in the open at that season. And, secondly, the Mishnah evidently
contemplates their being thus in the open thirty days before the Passover, or
in the month of February, during which the average rainfall is quite the
largest in the year. *
* The average rainfall in Jerusalem for eight years amounts to
fourteen inches in December, thirteen in January, and sixteen in February
(Barclay, City of the Great King, p.
428).
"Ten
measures of beauty," say the Rabbis, "hath God bestowed upon the
world, and nine of these fall to the lot of Jerusalem"--and again, "A
city, the fame of which has gone out from one end of the world to the
other" (Ber. 38). "Thine, O
Lord, is the greatness, the power, the glory, and eternity."
This--explains the Talmud--"is Jerusalem." In opposition to her rival
Alexandria, which was designated "the little," Jerusalem was called
"the great." It almost reminds one of the title "eternal
city," given to Rome, when we find the Rabbis speaking of Jerusalem as the
"eternal house." Similarly, if a common proverb has it, that
"all roads lead to Rome," it was a Jewish saying, "All coins come
from Jerusalem." This is not the place to describe the city in its appearance
and glory (for this compare the two first chapters of my volume on The Temple: Its Ministry and
Services). But one almost feels as if, on such a subject, one
could understand, if not condone, the manifest exaggerations of the Rabbis.
Indeed, there are indications that they scarcely expected their statements to
be taken literally. Thus, when the number of its synagogues is mentioned as 460
or 480, it is explained that the latter number is the numerical equivalent of
the word "full" in Isaiah 1:21 ("it was full of judgment").
It is more interesting to know, that we find in the Talmud express mention of
"the Synagogue of the Alexandrians," referred to in Acts 6:9--another
important confirmation, if such were needed, of the accuracy of St. Luke's
narratives. Of the hospitality of the inhabitants of Jerusalem accounts are
given, which we can scarcely regard as much exaggerated; for the city was not
reckoned to belong to any tribe in particular; it was to be considered as
equally the home of all. Its houses were to be neither hired nor let, but
freely thrown open to every brother. Nor did any one among the countless
thousands who thronged it at feast-times ever lack room. A curtain hung before
the entrance of a house intimated, that there was still room for guests; a
table spread in front of it, that its board was still at their disposal. And,
if it was impossible to accommodate within the walls of Jerusalem proper the
vast crowds which resorted to the city, there can be no doubt that for sacred
purpose Bethany and Bethphage were reckoned as within the
circle of Jerusalem. It calls forth peculiar sensations, when we read in these
Jewish records of Bethany and Bethphage as specially celebrated for their
hospitality to pilgrim-guests, for it wakes the sacred memories of our Lord's
sojourn with the holy family of Bethany, and especially of His last stay there
and of His royal entrance into Jerusalem.
In
truth, every effort was used to make Jerusalem truly a city of delight. Its
police and sanitary regulations were more perfect than in any modern city; the
arrangements such as to keep the pilgrim free to give his heart and mind to
sacred subjects. If, after all, "the townspeople," as they were
called, were regarded as somewhat proud and supercilious, it was something to
be a citizen of Jerushalaimah, as the
Jerusalemites preferred to write its name. Their constant intercourse with
strangers gave them a knowledge of men and of the world. The smartness and
cleverness of the young people formed a theme of admiration to their more shy
and awkward country relatives. There was also a grandeur in their
bearing--almost luxury; and an amount of delicacy, tact, and tenderness, which
appeared in all their public dealings. Among a people whose wit and cleverness
are proverbial, it was no mean praise to be renowned for these qualities. In
short, Jerusalem was the ideal of the Jew, in whatever land of exile he might
tarry. Her rich men would lavish fortunes on the support of Jewish learning,
the promotion of piety, or the support of the national cause. Thus one of them
would, when he found the price of sacrifices exceedingly high, introduce into
the Temple-court the requisite animals at his own cost, to render the service
possible for the poor. Or on another occasion he would offer to furnish the
city for twenty-one months with certain provisions in her struggle against
Rome. In the streets of Jerusalem men from the most distant countries met,
speaking every variety of language and dialect. Jews and Greeks, Roman soldiers
and Galilean peasants, Pharisees, Sadducees, and white-robed Essenes, busy
merchants and students of abstruse theology, mingled, a motley crowd, in the
narrow streets of the city of palaces. But over all the Temple, rising above
the city, seemed to fling its shadow and its glory. Each morning the threefold
blast of the priests' trumpets wakened the city with a call to prayer; each
evening the same blasts closed the working day, as with sounds from heaven.
Turn where you might, everywhere the holy buildings were in view, now with the
smoke of sacrifices curling over the courts, or again with solemn stillness
resting upon the sacred hills. It was the Temple which gave its character to
Jerusalem, and which decided its fate. There is a remarkable passage in the
Talmud, which, remembering that the time to which it refers was in all
probability the very year in which our Lord died on the cross, reads like an
unwilling confirmation of the Gospel narrative: "Forty years before the
destruction of the Temple, its doors opened of their own accord. Jochanan, *
the son of Saccai, rebuked them, saying: O Temple, why openest thou of thine
own accord? Ah! I perceive that thine end is at hand; for it is written (Zech
11:1): 'Open thy doors, O Lebanon, that the fire may devour thy cedars'" (Yoma 39 b). "And, behold, the veil
of the Temple was rent in twain from the top to the bottom" (Matt
27:51)--blessed be God, not merely in announcement of coming judgment, but
henceforth to lay open unto all the way into the Holiest of All.
* Caspari suggests that this was the same as the high-priest
Annas, the name having only the syllable indicating the name of Jehovah
prefixed.
Chapter 6
Jewish Homes
It may
be safely asserted, that the grand distinction, which divided all mankind into
Jews and Gentiles, was not only religious, but also social. However near the
cities of the heathen to those of Israel, however frequent and close the
intercourse between the two parties, no one could have entered a Jewish town or
village without feeling, so to speak, in quite another world. The aspect of the
streets, the building and arrangement of the houses, the municipal and
religious rule, the manners and customs of the people, their habits and
ways--above all, the family life, stood in marked contrast to what would be
seen elsewhere. On every side there was evidence that religion here was not
merely a creed, nor a set of observances, but that it pervaded every
relationship, and dominated every phase of life.
Let us
imagine a real Jewish town or village. There were many such, for Palestine had
at all times a far larger number of towns and villages than might have been
expected from its size, or from the general agricultural pursuits of its
inhabitants. Even at the time of its first occupation under Joshua we find
somewhere about six hundred towns--if we may judge by the Levitical cities, of
about an average circumference of two thousand cubits on each side, and with
probably an average population of from two to three thousand. But the number of
towns and villages, as well as their populousness, greatly increased in later
times. Thus Josephus (Life, 45)
speaks of not fewer than two hundred and forty townships in Galilee alone in
his days. This progress was, no doubt, due not only to the rapid development of
society, but also to the love of building that characterised Herod and his
family, and to which so many fortresses, palaces, temples, and towns owed their
origin. Alike the New Testament, Josephus, and the Rabbis give us three names,
which may be rendered by villages, townships, and towns--the latter being
surrounded by walls, and again distinguished into those fortified already at
the time of Joshua, and those of later date. A township might be either
"great," if it had its synagogue, or small, if it wanted such; this
being dependent on the residence of at least ten men, who could always be
reckoned upon to form a quorum for the worship of the synagogue (the so-called
Batlanin *); for service could not be celebrated with any less number of males.
* From "betal," to cease--as the glossary to Baba B. 82 a explains: men without
reproach, who gave up their work to give themselves wholly to the work of the
synagogue. Such had a claim to support from the synagogue revenues.
The
villages had no synagogue; but their inhabitants were supposed to go to the
nearest township for market on the Monday and Thursday of every week, when
service was held for them, and the local Sanhedrim also sat (Megill. i. 1-3). A very curious law
provided (Cheth. 110), that a man
could not oblige his wife to follow him if he moved either from a township to a
town, or the reverse. The reason of the former provision was, that in a town
people lived together, and the houses were close to each other; hence there was
a want of fresh, free air, and of gardens, which were enjoyed in townships. On
the other hand, a woman might object to exchange residence in a town for one in
a township, because in a town everything was to be got, and people met in the
streets and market-place from all the neighbourhood.
Statements
like these will give some idea of the difference between town and country life.
Let us first think of the former. Approaching one of the ancient fortified
towns, one would come to a low wall that protected a ditch. Crossing this moat,
one would be at the city wall proper, and enter through a massive gate, often
covered with iron, and secured by strong bars and bolts. Above the gate rose
the watch-tower. "Within the gate" was the shady or sheltered retreat
where "the elders" sat. Here grave citizens discussed public affairs
or the news of the day, or transacted important business. The gates opened upon
large squares, on which the various streets converged. Here was the busy scene
of intercourse and trade. The country-people stood or moved about, hawking the
produce of field, orchard, and dairy; the foreign merchant or pedlar exposed
his wares, recommending the newest fashions from Rome or Alexandria, the latest
luxuries from the far East, or the art produce of the goldsmith and the
modeller at Jerusalem, while among them moved the crowd, idle or busy,
chattering, chaffing, good-humoured, and bandying witticisms. Now they give way
respectfully before a Pharisee; or their conversation is hushed by the weird
appearance of an Essene or of some sectary--political or religious,--while low,
muttered curses attend the stealthy steps of the publican, whose restless eyes
wander around to watch that nothing escape the close meshes of the
tax-gatherer's net. These streets are all named, mostly after the trades or
guilds which have there their bazaars. For a guild always keeps together,
whether in street or synagogue. In Alexandria the different trades sat in the
synagogue arranged into guilds; and St. Paul could have no difficulty in
meeting in the bazaar of his trade with the like-minded Aquila and Priscilla
(Acts 18:2,3), with whom to find a lodging. In these bazaars many of the
workmen sat outside their shops, and, in the interval of labour, exchanged
greetings or banter with the passers-by. For all Israel are brethren, and there
is a sort of freemasonry even in the Jewish mode of salutation, which always
embodied either an acknowledgment of the God of Israel, or a brotherly wish of
peace. Excitable, impulsive, quick, sharp-witted, imaginative; fond of parable,
pithy sayings, acute distinctions, or pungent wit; reverent towards God and
man, respectful in the presence of age, enthusiastic of learning and of
superior mental endowments, most delicately sensitive in regard to the feelings
of others; zealous, with intensely warm Eastern natures, ready to have each
prejudice aroused, hasty and violent in passion, but quickly assuaged--such is
the motley throng around. And now, perhaps, the voice of a Rabbi, teaching in
some shady retreat--although latterly Jewish pride of learning forbade the
profanation of lore by popularising it for the "unlearned"--or,
better far, at one time the presence of the Master, gathers and keeps them
spell-bound, forgetful alike of the cravings of hunger and of the lapse of
time, till, the short Eastern day ended, the stars shining out on the deep blue
sky must have reminded many among them of the promise to their father Abraham,
now fulfilled in One greater than Abraham.
Back to
the town in the cool of even to listen to the delicious murmur of well or
fountain, as those crowd around it who have not cisterns in their own houses.
The watchman is on the top of the tower above the gateway; presently,
night-watchers will patrol the streets. Nor is there absolute darkness, for it
is customary to keep a light burning all night in the house, and the windows
(unlike those of modern Eastern dwellings) open chiefly on street and road.
Those large windows are called Tyrian, the smaller ones Egyptian. They are not
filled in with glass, but contain gratings or lattices. In the houses of the
rich the window-frames are elaborately carved, and richly inlaid. Generally the
woodwork is of the common sycamore, sometimes of olive or cedar, and in palaces
even of Indian sandal-wood. The entablature is more or less curiously carved
and ornamented. Only there must be no representation of anything in heaven or
on earth. So deep was the feeling on this point, that even the attempt of
Pilate to introduce by night into Jerusalem the effigies of Caesar on the top
of the Roman standards led to scenes in which the Jews showed themselves
willing to die for their convictions (Josephus, Ant, xviii, 59); while the palace of Herod Antipas at Tiberias was
burned by the mob because it was decorated with figures of animals (Josephus, Life, 62-67). These extreme views,
however, gave way, first, before the tolerant example of Gamaliel, the teacher
of Paul, who made use of a public bath, although adorned by a statue of Venus,
since, as he put it, the statue was intended for the embellishment of the bath,
and not the bath for the sake of the statue. If this argument reminds us that
Gamaliel was not a stranger to Christianity, the statement of his grandson,
that an idol was nothing if its worship had been disclaimed by the heathen (Ab. Sar. 52), recalls still more
strongly the teaching of St. Paul. And so we gradually come down to the modern
orthodox doctrine, which allows the representation of plants, animals, etc.,
but prohibits that of sun, moon, and stars, except for purposes of study, while,
though doubtfully, it admits those of men and even angels, provided they be in
sunken, not in raised workmanship.
The
rule of these towns and villages was exceedingly strict. The representatives of
Rome were chiefly either military men, or else fiscal or political agents. We
have, indeed, a notice that the Roman general Gabinius, about half a century
before Christ, divided Palestine for juridical purposes into five districts,
each presided over by a council (Josephus, Ant.
xiv, 91); but that arrangement was only of very short duration, and even while
it lasted these councils seem to have been Jewish. Then every town had is
Sanhedrim, * consisting of twenty-three members if the place numbered at least
one hundred and twenty men, or of three members if the population were smaller.
**
* The name "Sanhedrim," or "Sunedrion," is
undoubtedly of Greek derivation, although the Rabbis have tried to paraphrase
it as "Sin" (=Sinai) "haderin," those who repeat or explain
the law, or to trace its etymology, as being "those who hate to accept the persons of men in judgment"
(the name being supposed to be composed of the Hebrew equivalents of the words
italicised).
** An ingenious attempt has lately been made to show that the
Sanhedrim of three members was not a regular court, but only arbitrators chosen
by the parties themselves. But the argument, so far as it tries to prove that
such was always the case, seems to me not to meet all the facts.
These
Sanhedrists were appointed directly by the supreme authority, or Great
Sanhedrim, "the council," at Jerusalem, which consisted of
seventy-one members. It is difficult to fix the limits of the actual power
wielded by these Sanhedrims in criminal cases. But the smaller Sanhedrims are
referred to in such passages as Matthew 5:22, 23, 10:17; Mark 13:9. Of course
all ecclesiastical and, so to speak, strictly Jewish causes, and all religious
questions were within their special cognisance. Lastly, there were also in
every place what we may call municipal authorities, under the presidency of a
mayor--the representatives of the "elders"--an institution so
frequently mentioned in Scripture, and deeply rooted in Jewish society. Perhaps
these may be referred to in Luke 7:3, as sent by the centurion of Capernaum to
intercede for him with the Lord.
What
may be called the police and sanitary regulations were of the strictest
character. Of Caesarea, for example, we know that there was a regular system of
drainage into the sea, apparently similar to, but more perfect than that of any
modern town (Josephus, Ant. xv, 340).
The same holds true in regard to the Temple-buildings at Jerusalem. But in
every town and village sanitary rules were strictly attended to. Cemeteries,
tanneries, and whatever also might be prejudicial to health, had to be removed
at least fifty cubits outside a town. Bakers' and dyers' shops, or stables,
were not allowed under the dwelling of another person. Again, the line of each
street had to be strictly kept in building, nor was even a projection beyond it
allowed. In general the streets were wider than those of modern Eastern cities.
The nature of the soil, and the circumstance that so many towns were built on
hills (at least in Judaea), would, of course, be advantageous in a sanitary
point of view. It would also render the paving of the streets less requisite.
But we know that certain towns were
paved--Jerusalem with white stones (Josephus, Ant. xx, 219-223). To obviate occasions of dispute, neighbours were
not allowed to have windows looking into the courts or rooms of others nor
might the principal entrance to a shop be through a court common to two or
three dwellings.
These
brief notices may help us better to realise the surroundings of Jewish town
life. Looking up and down one of the streets of a town in Galilee or Judaea,
the houses would be seen to differ in size and in elegance, from the small
cottage, only eight or ten yards square, to the mansions of the rich, sometimes
two or more stories high, and embellished by rows of pillars and architectural
adornments. Suppose ourselves in front of a better-class dwelling, though not
exactly that of a patrician, for it is built of brick, or perhaps of undressed,
or even of dressed stone, but not of marble, nor yet of hewn stone; nor are its
walls painted with such delicate colours as vermilion, but simply whitewashed,
or, may be, covered with some neutral tint. A wide, sometimes costly, stair
leads from the outside straight up to the flat roof, which is made to slope a
little downwards, so as to allow the rainwater easily to flow through pipes
into the cistern below. The roof is paved with brick, stone, or other hard
substance, and surrounded by a balustrade, which, according to Jewish law, must
be at least two cubits (three feet) high, and strong enough to bear the weight
of a person. Police-regulations, conceived in the same spirit of carefulness,
prohibited open wells and pits, insufficient ladders, rickety stairs, even
dangerous dogs about a house. From roof to roof there might be a regular
communication, called by the Rabbis "the road of the roofs" (Babba Mez. 88 b). Thus a person could
make his escape, passing from roof to roof, till at the last house he would
descend the stairs that led down its outside, without having entered any
dwelling. To this "road of the roofs" our Lord no doubt referred in
His warning to His followers (Matt 24:17; Mark 13:15; Luke 17:31), intended to
apply to the last siege of Jerusalem: "And let him that is on the housetop
not go down into the house, neither enter therein." For ordinary
intercourse the roof was the coolest, the airiest, the stillest place. Of
course, at times it would be used for purposes of domestic economy. But thither
a man would retire in preference for prayer or quiet thinking; here he would
watch, and wait, and observe whether friend or foe, the gathering of the storm,
or--as the priest stationed on the pinnacle of the Temple before the morning
sacrifice--how the red and golden light of dawn spread along the edge of the
horizon. From the roof, also, it was easy to protect oneself against enemies,
or to carry on dangerous fight with those beneath; and assuredly, if anywhere,
it was "on the housetops" where secrets might be whispered, or, on
the other hand, the most public "proclamation" of them be made (Matt
10:27; Luke 12:3). The stranger's room was generally built on the roof, in
order that, undisturbed by the household, the guest might go out and come in;
and here, at the feast of Tabernacles, for coolness and convenience, the leafy
"booths" were often reared, in which Israel dwelt in memory of their
pilgrimage. Close by was "the upper chamber." On the roof the family
would gather for converse, or else in the court beneath--with its trees
spreading grateful shade, and the music of its plashing fountain falling
soothingly on the ear, as you stood in the covered gallery that ran all around,
and opened on the apartments of the household.
If the
guest-chamber on the roof, which could be reached from the outside, without
passing through the house, reminds us of Elisha and the Shunammite, and of the
last Passover-supper, to which the Lord and His disciples could go, and which
they could leave, without coming in contact with any in the house, the gallery
that ran round the court under the roof recalls yet another most solemn scene.
We remember how they who bore the man "sick of the palsy," when
unable to "come nigh unto Jesus for the press," "uncovered the
roof where He was," "and let him down through the tiling with his
couch into the midst before Jesus" (Mark 2:4; Luke 5:19). We know, from
many Talmudical passages, that the Rabbis resorted in preference to "the
upper room" when discussing religious questions. It may have been so in
this instance; and, unable to gain access through the door which led into the
upper room, the bearers of the sick may have broken down the ceiling from the
roof. Or, judging it more likely that the attendant multitude thronged the
court beneath, while Jesus stood in the gallery that ran round the court and
opened into the various apartments, they might have broken down the roof above
Him, and so slowly let down their burden at His feet, and in sight of them all.
There is a significant parallelism, or rather contrast, to this in a Rabbinical
story (Moed K. 25 a), which relates
how, when the bier on which a celebrated teacher was laid could not be passed
out at the door, they carried up their burden and let it down from the roof--on
its way, not to a new life, but to burial. Otherwise, there was also a stair
which led from the roof into the court and house. Approaching a house, as
visitors ordinarily would do, from the street, you would either pass through a
large outer court, or else come straight to the vestibule or porch. Here the
door opened into the inner court, which sometimes was shared by several families.
A porter opened to callers on mentioning their names, as did Rhoda to Peter on
the eventful night of his miraculous deliverance from prison (Acts 12:13,14).
Our Lord also applies this well-known fact of domestic life, when He says (Rev
3:20), "Behold, I stand at the door, and knock: if any man hear My voice,
and open the door, I will come into him, and will sup with him, and he with
Me." Passing through this inner court, and through the gallery, you would
reach the various rooms--the family room, the reception room, and the sleeping
apartments--the most retired being occupied by the ladies, and the inner rooms
used chiefly in winter. The furniture was much the same as that now in use,
consisting of tables, couches, chairs, candlesticks, and lamps, varying in
costliness according to the rank and wealth of the family. Among articles of
luxury we mention rich cushions for the head and arms, ornaments, and sometimes
even pictures. The doors, which moved on hinges fastened with wooden pins, were
barred by wooden bolts, which could be withdrawn by check keys from the
outside. The dining apartment was generally spacious, and sometimes employed
for meetings.
We have
been describing the arrangements and the appearance of towns and dwellings in
Palestine. But it is not any of these outward things which gives a real picture
of a Jewish home. Within, everything was quite peculiar. At the outset, the
rite of circumcision separated the Jew from the nations around, and dedicated
him to God. Private prayer, morning and evening, hallowed daily life, and
family religions pervaded the home. Before every meal they washed and prayed:
after it they "gave thanks." Besides, there were what may be
designated as special family feasts. The return of the Sabbath sanctified the
week of labour. It was to be welcomed as a king, or with songs as a bridegroom;
and each household observed it as a season of sacred rest and of joy. True,
Rabbinism made all this a matter of mere externalism, converting it into an
unbearable burden, by endless injunctions of what constituted work and of that
which was supposed to produce joy, thereby utterly changing its sacred
character. Still, the fundamental idea remained, like a broken pillar that
shows where the palace had stood, and what had been its noble proportions. As
the head of the house returned on the Sabbath-eve from the synagogue to his
home, he found it festively adorned, the Sabbath lamp brightly burning, and the
table spread with the richest each household could afford. But first he blessed
each child with the blessing of Israel. And next evening, when the Sabbath
light faded out, he made solemn "separation" between the hallowed day
and the working week, and so commenced his labour once more in the name of the
Lord. Nor were the stranger, the poor, the widow, or the fatherless forgotten.
How fully they were provided for, how each shared in what was to be considered
not a burden but a privilege, and with what delicacy relief was
administered--for all Israel were brethren, and fellow-citizens of their Jerusalem--those
know best who have closely studied Jewish life, its ordinances and practices.
But
this also is rather a sketch of religious than of family life. At the outset,
we should here say, that even the Hebrew name for "woman," given her
at her creation (Gen 2:23), marked a wife as the companion of her husband, and
his equal ("Ishah," a woman, from "Ish," a man). But it is
when we consider the relations between man and wife, children and parents, the
young and the aged, that the vast difference between Judaism and heathenism so
strikingly appears. Even the relationship in which God presented Himself to His
people, as their Father, would give peculiar strength and sacredness to the
bond which connected earthly parents with their offspring. Here it should be
borne in mind that, so to speak, the whole purpose of Israel as a nation, with
a view to the appearance of the Messiah from among them, made it to each
household a matter of deepest interest that no light in Israel should be
extinguished through want of succession. Hence, such an expression as (Jer
22:10), "Weep sore for him that goeth away: for he shall return no
more," was applied to those who died childless (Moed K. 27). Similarly, it was said that he who had no child was
like one dead. Proverbial expressions in regard to the "parental
relation" occur in Rabbinical writings, which in their higher application
remind us that the New Testament writers were Jews. If, in the impassioned
strain of happy assurance concerning our Christian safety, we are told (Rom
8:33), "Who shall lay anything to the charge of God's elect? It is God
that justifieth," we may believe that St. Paul was familiar with a saying
like this: "Shall a father bear witness against his son?" (Abod S. 3). The somewhat similar
question, "Is there a father who hateth his own son?" may recall to
our minds the comfort which the Epistle to the Hebrews ministers to those who
are in suffering (Heb 12:7), "If ye endure chastening, God dealeth with
you as with sons; for what son is he whom the father chasteneth not?"
Speaking
of the relation between parents and children, it may be safely asserted, that
no crime was more severely reprobated than any breach of the fifth commandment.
The Talmud, with its usual punctiliousness, enters into details, when it lays
down as a rule that "a son is bound to feed his father, to give him drink,
to clothe him, to protect him, to lead him in, and to conduct him out, and to
wash his face, his hands, and his feet"; to which the Jerusalem Gemara
adds, that a son is even bound to beg for his father--although here also
Rabbinism would give preference to a spiritual before a natural parent, or
rather to one who teaches the law before a father! The general state of Jewish
society shows us parents as fondly watching over their children, and children
as requiting their care by bearing with the foibles, and even the trials,
arising from the caprices of old age and infirmity. Such things as
undutifulness, or want of loving consideration for parents, would have wakened
a thrill of horror in Jewish society. As for crimes against parents, which the
law of God visited with the utmost penalty, they seem happily to have been
almost unknown. The Rabbinical ordinances, however, also specified the
obligation of parents, and limited their power. Thus a son was considered
independent whenever he could gain his own living; and, although a daughter
remained in the power of her father till marriage, she could not, after she was
of age, be given away without her own express and free consent. A father might
chastise his child, but only while young, and even then not to such extent as
to destroy self-respect. But to beat a grown-up son was forbidden on pain of
excommunication; and the apostolic injunction (Eph 6:4), "Fathers, provoke
not your children to wrath," finds almost its literal counterpart in the
Talmud (Moed K. 17 a). Properly
speaking, indeed, the Jewish law limited the absolute obligation of a father (a
mother was free from such legal obligation) to feed, clothe, and house his
child to his sixth year, after which he could only be admonished to it as one
of the duties of love, but not legally constrained (Chethub. 49 b; 65 b). In case of separation of the parents, the
mother had charge of the daughters, and the father of the sons; but the latter
also might be intrusted to the mother, if the judges considered it for the
advantage of the children.
A few
notices as to the reverence due to age will appropriately close this brief
sketch of Jewish home life. It was a beautiful thought--however some may doubt
its exegetical correctness--that just as the pieces of the broken tables of the
law were kept in the ark, so old age should be venerated and cherished, even
though it should be broken in mind or memory (Ber. 8 b). Assuredly, Rabbinism went to the utmost verge in this
matter when it recommended reverence for age, even though it were in the case
of one ignorant of the law, or of a Gentile. There were, however, diverging
opinions on this point. The passage, Leviticus 19:32, "Thou shalt rise up
before the hoary head, and honour the face of the old man," was explained
to refer only to sages, who alone were to be regarded as old. If R. Jose
compared such as learned of young men to those who ate unripe grapes and drank
of new wine, R. Jehudah taught, "Look not at the bottles, but at what they
contain. There are new bottles full of old wine, and old bottles which contain
not even new wine" (Ab. iv. 20).
Again, if in Deuteronomy 13:1, 2, and also, 18:21, 22 the people were directed
to test a prophet by the signs which he showed--a misapplication of which was
made by the Jews, when they asked Christ what sign He showed unto them (John
2:18, 6:30)--while in Deuteronomy 17:10 they were told simply "to do
according to all that they of that place inform thee," it was asked, What,
then, is the difference between an old man and a prophet? To this the reply
was: A prophet is like an ambassador, whom you believe in consequence of his
royal credentials; but an ancient is one whose word you receive without requiring
such evidence. And it was strictly enjoined that proper outward marks of
respect should be shown to old age, such as to rise in the presence of older
men, not to occupy their seats, to answer them modestly, and to assign to them
the uppermost places at feasts.
After
having thus marked how strictly Rabbinism watched over the mutual duties of
parents and children, it will be instructive to note how at the same time
traditionalism, in its worship of the letter, really destroyed the spirit of
the Divine law. An instance will here suffice; and that which we select has the
double advantage of illustrating an otherwise difficult allusion in the New
Testament, and of exhibiting the real characteristics of traditionalism. No
commandment could be more plainly in accordance, alike with the spirit and the
letter of the law, than this: "He that curseth father or mother, let him
die the death." Yet our Lord distinctly charges traditionalism with
"transgressing" it (Matt 15:4-6). The following quotation from the
Mishnah (Sanh. vii. 8) curiously
illustrates the justice of His accusation: "He that curseth his father or
his mother is not guilty, unless he curses them with express mention of the
name of Jehovah." In any other case the sages declare him absolved! And this
is by no means a solitary instance of Rabbinical perversion. Indeed, the moral
systems of the synagogue leave the same sad impression on the mind as its
doctrinal teaching. They are all elaborate chains of casuistry, of which no
truer description could be given than in the words of the Saviour (Matt 15:6):
"Ye have made the commandment of God of none effect by your
tradition."
Chapter 7
The Upbringing of Jewish Children
The
tenderness of the bond which united Jewish parents to their children appears
even in the multiplicity and pictorialness of the expressions by which the
various stages of child-life are designated in the Hebrew. Besides such general
words as "ben" and "bath"-"son" and
"daughter"--we find no fewer than nine different terms, each depicting
a fresh stage of life. The first of these simply designates the babe as the
newly-"born"--the "jeled," or, in the feminine,
"jaldah"--as in Exodus 2:3, 6, 8. But the use of this term throws a
fresh light on the meaning of some passages of Scripture. Thus we remember that
it is applied to our Lord in the prophecy of His birth (Isa 9:6): "For a
babe" ('jeled') is born unto us, a son ('ben') is given to us"; while
in Isaiah 2:6 its employment adds a new meaning to the charge: "They
please themselves (or strike hands) with the 'jalde'--the 'babes'--of
strangers"--marking them, so to speak, as not only the children of
strangers, but as unholy from their very birth. Compare also the pictorial, or
else the poetical, use of the word "jeled" in such passages as Isaiah
29:23, 57:4; Jeremiah 31:20; Ecclesiastes 4:13; 1 Kings 12:8; 2 Kings 2:24;
Genesis 42:22; and others. The next child-name, in point of time, is
"jonek," which means, literally, "a suckling," being also
sometimes used figuratively of plants, like our English "sucker," as
in Isaiah 53:2: "He shall grow up before Him as a
sucker"--"jonek." The word "jonek" occurs, for
example, in Isaiah 11:8, and in Psalm 8:2. On the other hand, the expression in
the latter passage, rendered "babes" in our Authorised Version, marks
a yet third stage in the child's existence, and a farther advancement in the
babe-life. This appears from many passages. As the word implies, the
"olel" is still "sucking"; but it is no longer satisfied
with only this nourishment, and is "asking bread," as in Lamentations
4:4: "The tongue of the 'jonek' cleaves to the roof of his mouth for
thirst: the 'olalim' ask bread." A fourth designation represents the child
as the "gamul," or "weaned one" (Psa 131:2; Isa 11:8,
28:9), from a verb which primarily means to complete, and secondarily to wean.
As we know, the period of weaning among the Hebrews was generally at the end of
two years (Chethub. 60), and was
celebrated by a feast. After that the fond eye of the Hebrew parent seems to
watch the child as it is clinging to its mother--as it were, ranging itself by
her--whence the fifth designation, "taph" (Esth 3:13, "The
'taph' and the women in one day"; Jer 40:7; Eze 9:6). The sixth period is
marked by the word "elem" (in the feminine, "almah," as in
Isa 7:14, of the virgin-mother), which denotes becoming firm and strong. As one
might expect, we have next the "naari," or youth--literally, he who
shakes off, or shakes himself free. Lastly, we find the child designated as
"bachur," or the "ripened one"; a young warrior, as in
Isaiah 31:8; Jeremiah 18:21, 15:8, etc. Assuredly, those who so keenly watched
child-life as to give a pictorial designation to each advancing stage of its
existence, must have been fondly attached to their children.
There
is a passage in the Mishnah (Aboth.
v. 21), which quaintly maps out and, as it were, labels the different periods
of life according to their characteristics. It is worth reproducing, if only to
serve as introduction to what we shall have to say on the upbringing of children.
Rabbi Jehudah, the son of Tema, says: "At five years of age, reading of
the Bible; at ten years, learning the Mishnah; at thirteen years, bound to the
commandments; at fifteen years, the study of the Talmud; at eighteen years,
marriage; at twenty, the pursuit of trade or business (active life); at thirty
years, full vigour; at forty, maturity of reason; at fifty, of counsel; at
sixty, commencement of agedness; at seventy, grey age; at eighty, advanced old
age; at ninety, bowed down; at a hundred, as if he were dead and gone, and
taken from the world." In the passage just quoted the age of five is
mentioned as that when a child is expected to commence reading the Bible--of
course, in the original Hebrew. But different opinions also prevailed. Generally
speaking, such early instruction was regarded as only safe in the case of very
healthy and strong children; while those of average constitution were not to be
set to regular work till six years old. There is both common sense and sound
experience in this Talmudical saying (Cheth.
50), "If you set your child to regular study before it is six years old,
you shall always have to run after, and yet never get hold of it." This
chiefly has reference to the irreparable injury to health caused by such early
strain upon the mind. If, on the other hand, we come upon an admonition to
begin teaching a child when it is three years old, this must refer to such
early instructions as the of certain passages of Scripture, or of small
isolated portions and prayers, which a parent would make his child repeat from
tenderest years. As we shall show in the sequel, six or seven was the age at
which a parent in Palestine was legally bound to attend to the schooling of his
son.
But,
indeed, it would have been difficult to say when the instruction of the Hebrew
child really commenced. Looking back, a man must have felt that the teaching
which he most--indeed, one might almost say, which he exclusively--valued had
mingled with the first waking thoughts of his consciousness. Before the child
could speak--before it could almost understand what was taught, in however
elementary language--before it would even take in the domestic rites of the
recurring weekly festival, or those of the annual feasts--it must have been
attracted by the so-called "Mesusah," which was fastened at the
door-post of every "clean" apartment, * and at the entrance of such
houses as were inhabited by Jews exclusively. The "Mesusah" was a
kind of phylactery for the house, serving a purpose kindred to that of the phylactery
for the person, both being derived from a misunderstanding and misapplication
of the Divine direction (Deu 6:9, 11:20), taking in the letter what was meant
for the spirit. But while we gladly concede that the earlier Jewish practice
was free from some of the present almost semi-heathenish customs, ** and
further, that many houses in Palestine were without it, there can be little
doubt that, even at the time of Christ, this "Mesusah" would be found
wherever a family was at all Pharisaically inclined.
* The "Mesusah" was not affixed to any that were not
"diroth cavod"--dwellings of honour. Thus not to bath rooms,
wash-houses, tanneries, dyeworks, etc. The "Mesusah" was only
attached to dwelling-places, not to synagogues.
** The tractate Massecheth
Mesusah cannot be regarded as an authority for early times. But even the
"Sohar" contains much that is little better than heathen superstition
on the supposed efficacy of the "Mesusah." Among later superstitions
connected with it, are the writing of the name "Cuso bemuchsas cuso"
(supposed to be that of Israel's watching angel), the etymology of that name,
etc.
For,
not to speak of what seems an allusion to it, so early as in Isaiah 57:8, we
have the distinct testimony of Josephus (Ant.
iv, 213) and of the Mishnah to their use (Ber.
iii. 3; Megill. i. 8; Moed K. iii. 4; Men. iii.7--in the last-mentioned place, even with superstitious
additions). Supposing the "Mesusah" to have been somewhat as at
present, it would have consisted of a small, longitudinally-folded parchment
square, on which, on twenty-two lines, these two passages were written:
Deuteronomy 6:4-9, and 11:13-21. Inclosed in a shining metal case, and affixed
to the door-post, the child, when carried in arms, would naturally put out its
hand to it; the more so, that it would see the father and all others, on going
out or in, reverently touch the case, and afterwards kiss the finger, speaking
at the same time a benediction. For, from early times, the presence of the
"Mesusah" was connected with the Divine protection, this verse being
specially applied to it: "The Lord shall preserve thy going out and thy
coming in from this time forth, and even for evermore" (Psa 121:8).
Indeed, one of the most interesting ancient literary monuments in existence--"Mechilta,"
a Jewish commentary on the book of Exodus, the substance of which is older than
the Mishnah itself, dating from the beginning of the second century of our era,
if not earlier--argues the efficacy of the "Mesusah" from the fact
that, since the destroying angel passed over the doors of Israel which bore the
covenant-mark, a much higher value must attach to the "Mesusah,"
which embodied the name of the Lord no less than ten times, and was to be found
in the dwellings of Israel day and night through all their generations. From
this to the magical mysticism of the "Kabbalah," and even to such
modern superstitions as that, if dust or dirt were kept within a cubit of the
"Mesusah," no less a host than three hundred and sixty-five demons
would come, there is a difference of degree rather than of kind.
But to
return. As soon as the child had any knowledge, the private and the united
prayers of the family, and the domestic rites, whether of the weekly Sabbath or
of festive seasons, would indelibly impress themselves upon his mind. It would
be difficult to say which of those feasts would have the most vivid effect upon
a child's imagination. There was "Chanukah," the feast of the
Dedication, with its illumination of each house, when (in most cases) the first
evening one candle would be lit for each member of the household, the number
increasing each night, till, on the eighth, it was eight times that of the
first. Then there was "Purim," the feast of Esther, with the good
cheer and boisterous merriment which it brought; the feast of Tabernacles, when
the very youngest of the house had to live out in the booth; and, chiefest of
feasts, the week of the Passover, when, all leaven being carefully purged out,
every morsel of food, by its difference from that ordinarily used, would show
the child that the season was a special one. From the moment a child was at all
capable of being instructed--still more, of his taking any part in the
services--the impression would deepen day by day. Surely no one who had ever
worshipped within the courts of Jehovah's house at Jerusalem could ever have
forgotten the scenes he had witnessed, or the words he had heard. Standing in
that gorgeous, glorious building, and looking up its terraced vista, the child
would watch with solemn awe, not unmingled with wonderment, as the great throng
of white-robed priests busily moved about, while the smoke of the sacrifice
rose from the altar of burnt-offering. Then, amid the hushed silence of that
vast multitude, they had all fallen down to worship at the time of incense.
Again, on those steps that led up to the innermost sanctuary the priests had
lifted their hands and spoken over the people the words of blessing; and then,
while the drink-offering was poured out, the Levites' chant of Psalms had risen
and swelled into a mighty volume; the exquisite treble of the Levite children's
voices being sustained by the rich round notes of the men, and accompanied by
instrumental music. The Jewish child knew many of these words. They had been
the earliest songs he had heard--almost his first lesson when clinging as a
"taph" to his mother. But now, in those white-marbled, gold-adorned
halls, under heaven's blue canopy, and with such surroundings, they would fall
upon his ear like sounds from another world, to which the prolonged threefold
blasts from the silver trumpets of the priests would seem to waken him. And they were sounds from another world;
for, as his father would tell him, all that he saw was after the exact pattern
of heavenly things which God had shown to Moses on Mount Sinai; all that he
heard was God-uttered, spoken by Jehovah Himself through the mouth of His
servant David, and of the other sweet singers of Israel. Nay, that place and
that house were God-chosen; and in the thick darkness of the Most Holy
Place--there afar off, where the high-priest himself entered on one day of the
year only, and in simple pure white vesture, not in those splendid golden
garments in which he was ordinarily arrayed--had once stood the ark, with the
veritable tables of the law, hewn and graven by the very hand of God; and
between the cherubim had then throned in the cloud the visible presence of
Jehovah. Verily this Temple with its services was heaven upon earth!
Nor
would it have been easy to lose the impression of the first Paschal Supper
which a child had attended. There was that about its symbols and services which
appealed to every feeling, even had it not been that the law expressly enjoined
full instruction to be given as to every part and rite of the service, as well
as to the great event recorded in that supper. For in that night had Israel
been born as a nation, and redeemed as the "congregation" of the
Lord. Then also, as in a mould, had their future history been cast to all time;
and there, as in type, had its eternal meaning and import for all men been
outlined, and with it God's purpose of love and work of grace foreshadowed.
Indeed, at a certain part of the service it was expressly ordained, that the
youngest at the Paschal table should rise and formally ask what was the meaning
of all this service, and how that night was distinguished from others; to which
the father was to reply, by relating, in language suited to the child's
capacity, the whole national history of Israel, from the calling of Abraham
down to the deliverance from Egypt and the giving of the law; "and the
more fully," it is added, "he explains it all, the better." In
view of all this, Philo might indeed, without exaggeration, say that the Jews
"were from their swaddling clothes, even before being taught either the
sacred laws or the unwritten customs, trained by their parents, teachers, and
instructors to recognise God as Father and as the Maker of the world" (Legat. ad. Cajum, sec. 16); and that,
"having been taught the knowledge (of the laws) from earliest youth, they
bore in their souls the image of the commandments" (Ibid. sec. 31). To the
same effect is the testimony of Josephus, that "from their earliest
consciousness" they had "learned the laws, so as to have them,as it
were, engraven upon the soul" (Ag.
Apion, ii, 18); although, of course, we do not believe it, when, with his
usual boastful magniloquence, he declares that at the age of fourteen he had
been "frequently" consulted by "the high priests and principal
men of the city...about the accurate understanding of points of the law" (Life, 7-12; compare also Ant. iv, 31; Ag. Apion, i, 60-68, ii, 199-203).
But
there is no need of such testimony. The Old Testament, the Apocrypha, and the
New Testament, leading us progressively from century to century, indicate the
same carefulness in the upbringing of children. One of the earliest narratives
of Scripture records how God said to Abraham, "I know him, that he will
command his children, and his household after him, and they shall keep the way
of Jehovah to do justice and judgment" (Gen 18:19)--a statement which, we
may note by the way, implies the distinction between the seed of Abraham after
the flesh and after the spirit. How thoroughly the spirit of this Divine
utterance was carried out under the law, appears from a comparison of such
passages as Exodus 12:26, 13:8, 14; Deuteronomy 4:9, 10, 6:7, 20, 11:19, 31:13;
Psalm 78:5, 6. It is needless to pursue the subject farther, or to show how
even God's dealings with His people were regarded as the basis and model of the
parental relationship. But the book in the Old Testament which, if properly
studied, would give us the deepest insight into social and family life under
the old dispensation--we mean the book of Proverbs--is so full of admonitions about
the upbringing of children, that it is sufficient to refer the reader generally
to it. He will find there the value of such training, its object, in the
acquisition of true wisdom in the fear and service of Jehovah, and the opposite
dangers most vividly portrayed--the practical bearing of all being summed up in
this aphorism, true to all times: "Train up a child in the way he should
go, and when he is old he will not depart from it" (Prov 22:6); of which
we have this New Testament application: "Bring up (your children) in the
nurture and admonition of the Lord" (Eph 6:4).
The
book of Proverbs brings before us yet another phase of deepest interest. It
contains the fullest appreciation of woman in her true dignity, and of her
position and influence in the family-life. It is quite true, as we shall
presently show, that the obligation to train the child rested primarily upon
the father, and that both by the law of God and by the ordinances of the
Rabbis. But even the patriarchal story will prepare an attentive reader to
find, especially in the early upbringing of children, that constant influence
of woman, which, indeed, the nature of the maternal relationship implies,
provided the family-life be framed on the model of the Word of God. Lovelier
pictures of this than the mother of Samuel and the pious Shunammite hostess of
Elisha can scarcely be conceived. But the book of Proverbs shows us, that even
in the early times of the Jewish monarchy this characteristic of Old Testament
life also appeared outside the bounds of the Holy Land, wherever pious
Israelites had their settlements. The subject is so deeply interesting,
historically and religiously, and perhaps so new to some readers, that a slight
digression may be allowed us.
Beyond
the limits of the Holy Land, close by Dumah, lay the land or district of Massa
(Gen 25:14), one of the original seats of the Ishmaelites (1 Chron 1:30). From
Isaiah 21:11 we gather that it must have been situate beyond Seir--that is, to
the south-east of Palestine, in Northern Arabia. Whether the Ishmaelites of
Massa had come to the knowledge of Jehovah, the true God; whether Massa was
occupied by a Jewish colony, which there established the service of the Lord; *
or whether, through the influence of Hebrew immigrants, such a religious change
had been brought about, certain it is, that the two last chapters of the book
of Proverbs introduce the royal family of Massa as deeply imbued with the
spiritual religion of the Old Testament, and the queen- mother as training the
heir to the throne in the knowledge and fear of the Lord. **
* From 1 Chronicles 4:38-43 we infer colonisation in that
direction, especially on the part of the tribe of Simeon. Utterances in the
prophets (such as in Isa 21 and Micah 1) seem also to indicate a very wide spread
of Jewish settlers. It is a remarkable fact that, according to mediaeval Jewish
and Arab writers, the districts of Massa and Dumah were largely inhabited by
Jews.
** There can be no question that the word rendered in the
Authorised Version (Prov 30:1 and 31:1) by "prophecy" is simply the
name of a district, "Massa."
Indeed,
so much is this the case, that the instruction of the queen of Massa, and the
words of her two royal sons, are inserted in the book of Proverbs as part of
the inspired records of the Old Testament. According to the best criticism,
Proverbs 30:1 should be thus rendered: "The words of Agur, the son of her
whom Massa obeys. Spake the man to God-with-me--God with me, and I was
strong." *
* Or, according to another rendering, "Spake the man: I
diligently searched after God, and I am become weary." This, of course, is
not the place for critical discussion; but we may say that we have followed the
general conclusions adopted alike by Delitzsch and Zockler, and by Ewald,
Hitzig, and Bertheau.
Then
Proverbs 31 embodies the words of Augur's royal brother, even "the words
of Lemuel, king of Massa, with which his mother taught him." If the very
names of these two princes--Agur, "exile," and Lemuel, "for
God," or "dedicated to God"--are significant of her convictions,
the teaching of that royal mother, as recorded in Proverbs 31:2-9, is worthy of
a "mother in Israel." No wonder that the record of her teaching is
followed by an enthusiastic description of a godly woman's worth and work (Prov
31:10-31), each verse beginning with a successive letter of the Hebrew alphabet
(the Hebrew alphabet has 22 letters), like the various sections of Psalm
119--as it were, to let her praises ring through every letter of speech.
As
might have been expected, the spirit of the Apocryphal books is far different
from that which breathes in the Old Testament. Still, such a composition as
Ecclesiasticus shows that even in comparatively late and degenerate times the
godly upbringing of children occupied a most prominent place in religious
thinking. But it is when we approach the New Testament, that a fresh halo of
glory seems to surround woman. And here our attention is directed to the
spiritual influence of mothers rather than of fathers. Not to mention "the
mother of Zebedee's children," nor the mother of John Mark, whose home at
Jerusalem seems to have been the meeting-place and the shelter of the early
disciples, and that in times of the most grievous persecution; nor yet
"the elect lady and her children," whom not only St. John, "but
also all they that know the truth," loved in truth (2 John 1), and her
similarly elect sister with her children (v 13), two notable instances will
occur to the reader. The first of these presents a most touching instance of a
mother's faith, and prayers, and labour of love, to which the only parallel in
later history is that of Monica, the mother of St. Augustine. How Eunice, the
daughter of the pious Lois, had come to marry a heathen, * we know as little as
the circumstances which may have originally led the family to settle at Lystra
(Acts 16:1; compare 14:6, etc.), a place where there was not even a synagogue.
* The language of the New Testament leads to the inference that
Timothy's father was not only by birth, but continued a Greek--being not merely
a heathen, but not even a Jewish proselyte.
At most
then two or three Jewish families lived in that heathen city. Perhaps Lois and
Eunice were the only worshippers of Jehovah there; for we do not even read of a
meeting-place for prayer, such as that by the river-side where Paul first met
Lydia. Yet in such adverse circumstances, and as the wife of a Greek, Eunice
proved one to whom royal Lemuel's praise applied in the fullest sense:
"Her children arise up and call her blessed," and "Her works
praise her in the gates"-- of the new Jerusalem. Not a truer nor more
touching portraiture of a pious Jewish home could have been drawn than in these
words of St. Paul: "I call to remembrance the unfeigned faith that is in thee,
which dwelt first in thy grandmother Lois, and thy mother Eunice"; and
again, "From a child thou hast know the Holy Scriptures" (2 Tim 1:5,
3:15). There was, we repeat, no synagogue in Lystra where Timothy might have
heard every Sabbath, and twice in the week, Moses and the Prophets read, and
derived other religious knowledge; there was, so far as we can see, neither
religious companionship nor means of instruction of any kind, nor religious
example, not even from his father; but all around quite the contrary. But there
was one influence for highest good--constant, unvarying, and most powerful. It
was that of "mother of Israel." From the time that as a
"taph" he clung to her--even before that, when a "gamul,"
an "olel," and a "jonek"--had Eunice trained Timothy in the
nurture and admonition of the Lord. To quote again the forcible language of St.
Paul, "From an infant" * (or baby) "thou hast known the Holy
Scriptures, which are able to make thee wise unto salvation, through faith
which is in Christ Jesus."
* The Greek term means literally "a baby," and is so
used, not only by classical writers, but in all the passages in which it occurs
in the New Testament, which are as follows: Luke 1:41, 44, 2:12, 16, 18:15;
Acts 7:19; 2 Tim 3:15; and 1 Peter 2:2.
From
the Apocrypha, from Josephus, and from the Talmud we know what means of
instruction in the Scriptures were within reach of a pious mother at that time.
In a house like that of Timothy's father there would, of course, be no
phylacteries, with the portions of Scripture which they contained, and probably
no "Mesusah," although, according to the Mishnah (Ber. iii. 3), the latter duty was
incumbent, not only upon men but upon women. the Babylon Talmud (Ber. 20 b) indeed gives a very
unsatisfactory reason for the latter provision. But may it not be that the
Jewish law had such cases in view as that of Eunice and her son, without
expressly saying so, from fear of lending a sanction to mixed marriages? Be this
as it may, we know that at the time of the Syrian persecutions, just before the
rising of the Maccabees, the possession of portions or of the whole of the Old
Testament by private families was common in Israel. For, part of those
persecutions consisted in making search for these Scriptures and destroying
them (1 Macc. i. 57), as well as punishing their possessors (Josephus, Ant. xii, 256). Of course, during the
period of religious revival which followed the triumph of the Maccabees, such
copies of the Bible would have greatly multiplied. It is by no means an
exaggeration to say that, if perhaps only the wealthy possessed a complete copy
of the Old Testament, written out on parchment or on Egyptian paper, there
would scarcely be a pious home, however humble, which did not cherish as its
richest treasure some portion of the Word of God--whether the five books of the
Law, or the Psalter, or a roll of one or more of the Prophets. Besides, we know
from the Talmud that at a later period, and probably at the time of Christ
also, there were little parchment rolls specially for the use of children,
containing such portions of Scripture as the "Shema" * (Deut 6:4-9,
11:13-21; Num 15:37-41), the "Hallel" (Psa 113-118), the history of
the Creation to that of the Flood, and the first eight chapters of the book of
Leviticus. Such means of instruction there would be at the disposal of Eunice
in teaching her son.
* The "Shema"--so called from the first word,
"Shema" ("Hear, O Israel")--forms part of the regular
prayers; as the section called "Hallel" ("praise") was
appointed to be sung at certain seasons.
And
this leads us to mention, with due reverence, the other and far greater New
Testament instance of maternal influence in Israel. It is none less than that
of the mother of our blessed Lord Himself. While the fact that Jesus became
subject to His parents, and grew in wisdom and in favour both with God and man,
forms part of the unfathomable mystery of His self-humiliation, the influence
exerted upon His early education, especially by His mother, seems implied
throughout the gospel history. Of course, His was a pious Jewish home; and at
Nazareth there was a synagogue, to which, as we shall by-and-by explain, a
school was probably attached. In that synagogue Moses and the Prophets would be
read, and, as afterwards by Himself (Luke 4:16), discourses or addresses be
delivered from time to time. What was taught in these synagogue-schools, and
how, will be shown in another chapter. But, whether or not Jesus had attended
such a school, His mind was so thoroughly imbued with the Sacred Scriptures--He
was so familiar with them in their every detail--that we cannot fail to infer
that the home of Nazareth possessed a precious copy of its own of the entire
Sacred Volume, which from earliest childhood formed, so to speak, the meat and
drink of the God-Man. More than that, there is clear evidence that He was
familiar with the art of writing, which was by no means so common in those days
as reading. The words of our Lord, as reported both by St. Matthew (Matt 5:18)
and by St. Luke (Luke 16:17), also prove that the copy of the Old Testament
from which He had drawn was not only in the original Hebrew, but written, like
our modern copies, in the so-called Assyrian, and not in the ancient
Hebrew-Phoenician characters. This appears from the expression "one iota
or one little hook"--erroneously rendered "tittle" in our
Authorised Version--which can only apply to the modern Hebrew characters. That
our Lord taught in Aramaean, and that He used and quoted the Holy Scriptures in
the Hebrew, perhaps sometimes rendering them for popular use into Aramaean,
there can be little doubt on the part of careful and unprejudiced students,
though some learned men have held the opposite. It is quite true that the
Mishnah (Megill. i. 8) seems to allow
the writing of Holy Scripture in any language; but even Simeon, the son of
Gamaliel (the teacher of St. Paul), confined this concession to the Greek--no
doubt with a view to the LXX, which was so widely spread in his time. But we also
know from the Talmud, how difficult it was for a Rabbi to defend the study or
use of Greek, and how readily popular prejudice burst into a universal and
sweeping condemnation of it. The same impression is conveyed not only from the
immediate favourable change which the use of the Aramaean by St. Paul produced
upon the infuriated people (Acts 21:40), but also from the fact that only an
appeal to the Hebrew Scriptures could have been of authority in discussion with
the Pharisees and Scribes, and that it alone gave point to the frequent
expostulations of Christ: "Have ye not read?" (Matt 12:3, 19:4,
21:13, 16, 42, 22:31).
This
familiarity from earliest childhood with the Scriptures in the Hebrew original
also explains how at the age of twelve Jesus could be found "in the
Temple; sitting in the midst of the doctors, both hearing them and asking them
questions" (Luke 2:46). In explaining this seemingly strange circumstance,
we may take the opportunity of correcting an almost universal mistake. It is
generally thought that, on the occasion referred to, the Saviour had gone up,
as being "of age," in the Jewish sense of the expression, or, to use
their own terms, as a "Bar Mizvah," or "son of the
commandment," by which the period was marked when religious obligations
and privileges devolved upon a youth, and he became a member of the
congregation. But the legal age for this was not twelve, but thirteen (Ab. v. 21). On the other hand, the
Rabbinical law enjoined (Yoma, 82 a)
that even before that--two years, or at least one year--lads should be brought
up to the Temple, and made to observe the festive rites. Unquestionably, it was
in conformity with this universal custom that Jesus went on the occasion named
to the Temple. Again, we know that it was the practice of the members of the
various Sanhedrims--who on ordinary days sat as judicatories, from the close of
the morning to the time of the evening sacrifice (Sanh. 88 b)--to come out upon the Sabbaths and feast-days on
"the terrace of the Temple," and there publicly to teach and expound,
the utmost liberty being given of asking questions, discussing, objecting, and
otherwise taking intelligent part in these lectures. On the occasion of
Christ's presence, these discussions would, as usual, be carried on during the
"Moed Katon," or minor festive days, intervening between the second
and the last day of the Paschal week. Joseph and Mary, on the other hand, had,
as allowed by the law, returned towards Nazareth on the third day of the
Paschal week, while Jesus remained behind. These circumstances also explain why
His appearance in the midst of the doctors, although very remarkable
considering His age, did not at once command universal attention. In point of
fact, the only qualification requisite, so far as learning was concerned, would
be a thorough knowledge of the Scriptures in the Hebrew, and a proper
understanding of them.
What we
have hitherto described will have conveyed to the reader that the one branch of
instruction aimed after or desired by the Jews at the time of Christ was
religious knowledge. What was understood by this, and how it was
imparted--whether in the family or in the public schools--must form the subject
of special investigation.
Chapter 8
Subjects of Study.
Home Education in Israel; Female Education.
Elementary Schools, Schoolmasters, and School Arrangements.
If a
faithful picture of society in ancient Greece or Rome were to be presented to
view, it is not easy to believe that even they who now most oppose the Bible
could wish their aims success. For this, at any rate, may be asserted, without
fear of gainsaying, that no other religion than that of the Bible has proved
competent to control an advanced, or even an advancing, state of civilisation.
Every other bound has been successively passed and submerged by the rising
tide; how deep only the student of history knows. Two things are here
undeniable. In the case of heathenism every advance in civilisation has marked
a progressive lowering of public morality, the earlier stages of national life
always showing a far higher tone than the later. On the contrary, the religion
of the Bible (under the old as under the new dispensation) has increasingly
raised, if not uniformly the public morals, yet always the tone and standard of
public morality; it has continued to exhibit a standard never yet attained, and
it has proved its power to control public and social life, to influence and to
mould it.
Strange
as it may sound, it is strictly true that, beyond the boundaries of Israel, it
would be scarcely possible to speak with any propriety of family life, or even
of the family, as we understand these terms. It is significant, that the Roman
historian Tacitus should mark it as something special among the Jews *--which
they only shared with the ancient barbarian Germans--that they regarded it as a
crime to kill their offspring!
* Tacitus, Hist. v. 5.
In general this fifth book is most interesting, as showing the strange mixture
of truth and error, and the intense hatred of the Jewish race even on the part
of such men as Tacitus.
This is
not the place to describe the exposure of children, or the various crimes by
which ancient Greece and Rome, in the days of their highest culture, sought to
rid themselves of what was regarded as superfluous population. Few of those who
have learned to admire classical antiquity have a full conception of any one
phase in its social life--whether of the position of woman, the relation of the
sexes, slavery, the education of children, their relation to their parents, or
the state of public morality. Fewer still have combined all these features into
one picture, and that not merely as exhibited by the lower orders, or even
among the higher classes, but as fully owned and approved by those whose names
have descended in the admiration of ages as the thinkers, the sages, the poets,
the historians, and the statesmen of antiquity. Assuredly, St. Paul's
description of the ancient world in the first and second chapters of his
Epistle to the Romans must have appeared to those who lived in the midst of it
as Divine even in its tenderness, delicacy, and charity; the full picture under
bright sunlight would have been scarcely susceptible of exhibition. For such a
world there was only one alternative--either the judgment of Sodom, or the
mercy of the Gospel and the healing of the Cross. *
8 Let it not be thought that we have been guilty of the slightest
exaggeration. The difficulty here is to tell the truth and yet find moderate
terms in which to express it. That Christianity should have laid its hold on
such a society, found there its brightest martyrs and truest followers, and
finally subdued and transformed it, is quite as great a miracle as that of the
breaking down of the middle wall of partition among the Jews, or their
spiritual transformation of mind and heart from self-righteousness and
externalism. In either case, to the student of history the miracle will seem
greater than if "one rose from the dead."
When we
pass from the heathen world into the homes of Israel, even the excess of their
exclusiveness seems for the moment a relief. It is as if we turned from enervating,
withering, tropical heat into a darkened room, whose grateful coolness makes us
for the moment forget that its gloom is excessive, and cannot continue as the
day declines. And this shutting out of all from without, this exclusiveness,
applied not only to what concerned their religion, their social and family
life, but also to their knowledge. In the days of Christ the pious Jew had no
other knowledge, neither sought nor cared for any other--in fact, denounced
it--than that of the law of God. At the outset, let it be remembered that, in
heathenism, theology, or rather mythology, had no influence whatever on
thinking or life--was literally submerged under their waves. To the pious Jew,
on the contrary, the knowledge of God was everything; and to prepare for or
impart that knowledge was the sum total, the sole object of his education. This
was the life of his soul--the better, and only true life, to which all else as
well as the life of the body were merely subservient, as means towards an end.
His religion consisted of two things: knowledge of God, which by a series of
inferences, one from the other, ultimately resolved itself into theology, as
they understood it; and service, which again consisted of the proper observance
of all that was prescribed by God, and of works of charity towards men--the
latter, indeed, going beyond the bound of what was strictly due (the Chovoth)
into special merit or "righteousness" (Zedakah). But as service
presupposed knowledge, theology was again at the foundation of all, and also
the crown of all, which conferred the greatest merit. This is expressed or
implied in almost innumerable passages of Jewish writings. Let one suffice, not
only because it sounds more rationalistic, but because it is to this day
repeated each morning in his prayers by every Jew: "These are the things
of which a man eats the fruit in this world, but their possession continueth
for the next world: to honour father and mother, pious works, peacemaking
between man and man, and the study of the law, which is equivalent to them
all" (Peah. i. 1).
And
literally "equivalent to them all" was such study to the Jew. The
circumstances of the times forced him to learn Greek, perhaps also Latin, so
much as was necessary for intercourse; and to tolerate at least the Greek
translation of the Scriptures, and the use of any language in the daily prayers
of the Shema, of the eighteen benedictions, and of the grace after meat (these
are the oldest elements of the Jewish liturgy). But the blessing of the priests
might not be spoken, nor the phylacteries nor the Mesusah written, in other
than the Hebrew language (Megil. i.
8; Sotah, vii. 1, 2); while heathen
science and literature were absolutely prohibited. To this, and not to the mere
learning of Greek, which must have been almost necessary for daily life, refer
such prohibitions as that traced to the time of Titus (Sotah, ix. 14), forbidding a man to teach his son Greek. The Talmud
itself (Men. 99 b) furnishes a clever
illustration of this, when, in reply to the question of a younger Rabbi,
whether, since he knew the whole "Thorah" (the law), he might be
allowed to study "Greek wisdom," his uncle reminded him of the words
(Josh 1:8), "Thou shalt meditate therein day and night." "Go, then,
and consider," said the older Rabbi, "which is the hour that is
neither of the day nor of the night, and in it thou mayest study Grecian
wisdom." This, then, was one source of danger averted. Then, as for the
occupations of ordinary life, it was indeed quite true that every Jew was bound
to learn some trade or business. But this was not to divert him from study;
quite the contrary. It was regarded as a profanation--or at least declared
such--to make use of one's learning for secular purposes, whether of gain or of
honour. The great Hillel had it (Ab.
i. 13): "He who serves himself by the crown (the 'Thorah') shall fade
away." To this Rabbi Zadok added the warning, "Make study neither a
crown by which to shine, nor yet a spade with which to dig"--the Mishnah
inferring that such attempts would only lead to the shortening of life (Ab. iv. 5). All was to be merely
subsidiary to the one grand object; the one was of time, the other of eternity;
the one of the body, the other of the soul; and its use was only to sustain the
body, so as to give free scope to the soul on its upward path. Every science
also merged in theology. Some were not so much sciences as means of livelihood,
such as medicine and surgery; others were merely handmaidens to theology.
Jurisprudence was in reality a kind of canon law; mathematics and astronomy
were subservient to the computations of the Jewish calendar; literature existed
not outside theological pursuits; and as for history, geography, or natural
studies, although we mark, in reference to the latter, a keenness of observation
which often led instinctively to truth, we meet with so much ignorance, and
with so many gross mistakes and fables, as almost to shake the belief of the
student in the trustworthiness of any Rabbinical testimony.
From
what has been stated, three inferences will be gathered, all of most material
bearing on the study of the New Testament. It will be seen how a mere knowledge
of the law came to hold such place of almost exclusive importance that its
successful prosecution seemed to be well-nigh all in all. Again, it is easy now
to understand why students and teachers of theology enjoyed such exceptional
honour (Matt 23:6,7: Mark 12:38,39: Luke 11:43, 20:46). In this respect the
testimonies of Onkelos, in his paraphrastic rendering of the Scriptures, of the
oldest "Targumim," or paraphrastic commentaries, of the Mishnah, and
of the two Talmuds, are not only unanimous, but most extravagant. Not only are
miracles supposed to be performed in attestation of certain Rabbis, but such a
story is actually ventured upon (Bab. Mes.
86 a), as that on the occasion of a discussion in the academy of heaven, when
the Almighty and His angels were of different opinions in regard to a special
point of law, a Rabbi famed for his knowledge of that subject was summoned up
by the angel of death to decide the matter between them! The story is
altogether too blasphemous for details, and indeed the whole subject is too
wide for treatment in this connection. If such was the exalted position of a
Rabbi, this direction of the Mishnah seems quite natural, that in case of loss,
of difficulties, or of captivity, a teacher was to be cared for before a
father, since to the latter we owed only our existence in this world, but to
the former the life of the world to come (Bab.
Mez. ii. 11). It is curious how in this respect also Roman Catholicism and
Pharisaism arrive at the same ultimate results. Witness this saying of the
celebrated Rabbi, who flourished in the thirteenth century, and whose authority
is almost absolute among the Jews. The following is his glossary on Deuteronomy
17:11: "Even if a Rabbi were to teach that your left hand was the right,
and your right hand the left, you are bound to obey."
The
third inference which the reader will draw is as to the influence which such
views must have exercised upon education, alike at home and in schools. It is
no doubt only the echo of the most ancient mode of congratulating a parent when
to this day those who are present at a circumcision, and also the priest when
the first-born is redeemed from him, utter this: "As this child has been
joined to the covenant" (or, as the case may be, "attained this
redemption"), "so may it also be to him in reference to the 'thorah,'
the 'chuppah' (the marriage-baldacchino, under which the regular marriage ceremony
is performed), and to good works." The wish marks with twofold emphasis
the life that is to come, as compared with the life that now is. This quite
agrees with the account of Josephus, who contrasts the heathen festivals at the
birth of children with the Jewish enactments by which children were from their
very infancy nourished up in the laws of God (Ag. Apion, i, 38-68, ii, 173-205).
There
can be no question that, according to the law of Moses, the early education of
a child devolved upon the father; of course, always bearing in mind that his
first training would be the mother's (Deu 11:19, and many other passages). If
the father were not capable of elementary teaching, a stranger would be
employed. Passing over the Old Testament period, we may take it that, in the
days of Christ, home-teaching ordinarily began when the child was about three
years old. There is reason for believing that, even before this, that careful
training of the memory commenced, which has ever since been one of the mental characteristics
of the Jewish nation. Verses of Scripture, benedictions, wise sayings, etc.,
were impressed on the child, and mnemonic rules devised to facilitate the
retention of what was so acquired. We can understand the reason of this from
the religious importance attaching to the exact preservation of the very words
of tradition. The Talmud describes the beau
ideal of a student when it compares him to a well-plastered cistern, which
would not let even a single drop escape. Indeed, according to the Mishnah, he
who from negligence "forgets any one thing in his study of the Mishnah,
Scripture imputes it to him as if he had forfeited his life"; the
reference here being to Deuteronomy 4:9 (Ab.
iii. 10). And so we may attach some credit even to Josephus' boast about his
"wonderful memory" (Life,
ii, 8).
In
teaching to read, the alphabet was to be imparted by drawing the letters on a
board, till the child became familiar with them. Next, the teacher would point
in the copy read with his finger, or, still better, with a style, to keep up
the attention of the pupil. None but well-corrected manuscripts were to be
used, since, as was rightly said, mistakes impressed upon the young mind were
afterwards not easily corrected. To acquire fluency, the child should be made to
read aloud. Special care was to be bestowed on the choice of good language, in
which respect, as we know, the inhabitants of Judaea far excelled those of
Galilee, who failed not only in elegance of diction, but even in their
pronunciation. At five years of age the Hebrew Bible was to be begun;
commencing, however, not with the book of Genesis, but with that of Leviticus.
This not to teach the child his guilt, and the need of justification, but
rather because Leviticus contained those ordinances which it behoved a Jew to
know as early as possible. The history of Israel would probably have been long
before imparted orally, as it was continually repeated on all festive
occasions, as well as in the synagogue.
It has
been stated in a former chapter that writing was not so common an
accomplishment as reading. Undoubtedly, the Israelites were familiar with it
from the very earliest period of their history, whether or not they had
generally acquired the art in Egypt. We read of the graving of words on the
gems of the high-priest's breastplate, of the record of the various genealogies
of the tribes, etc; while such passages as Deuteronomy 6:9, 11:20, 24:1, 3,
imply that the art was not confined to the priesthood (Num 5:23), but was known
to the people generally. Then we are told of copies of the law (Deu 17:18,
28:58, etc.), while in Joshua 10:13 we have a reference to a work called
"the book of Jasher." In Joshua 18:9 we find mention of a description
of Palestine "in a book," and in 24:26 of what Joshua "wrote in
the book of the law of God." From Judges 8:14 (margin) it would appear
that in the time of Gideon the art of writing was very generally known. After
that, instances occur so frequently and applied to so many relationships, that
the reader of the Old Testament can have no difficulty in tracing the progress
of the art. This is not the place to follow the subject farther, nor to
describe the various materials employed at that time, nor the mode of
lettering. At a much later period the common mention of "scribes"
indicates the popular need of such a class. We can readily understand that the
Oriental mind would delight in writing enigmatically, that is, conveying by
certain expressions a meaning to the initiated which the ordinary reader would
miss, or which, at any rate, would leave the explanation to the exercise of
ingenuity. Partially in the same class we might reckon the custom of
designating a word by its initial letter. All theses were very early in
practice, and the subject has points of considerable interest. Another matter
deserves more serious attention. It will scarcely be credited how general the
falsification of signatures and documents had become. Josephus mentions it (Ant. xvi, 317-319); and we know that St.
Paul was obliged to warn the Thessalonians against it (2 Thess 2:2), and at
last to adopt the device of signing every letter which came from himself. There
are scarcely any ancient Rabbinical documents which have not been interpolated
by later writers, or, as we might euphemistically call it, been recast and
re-edited. In general, it is not difficult to discover such additions; although
the vigilance and acuteness of the critical scholar are specially required in
this direction to guard against rash and unwarrantable inferences. But without
entering on such points, it may interest the reader to know what writing
materials were employed in New Testament times. In Egypt red ink seems to have
been used; but assuredly the ink mentioned in the New Testament was black, as
even the term indicates ("melan," 2 Cor 3:3; 2 John 12; 3 John 13).
Josephus speaks of writing in gold letters (Ant.
xii, 324-329); and in the Mishnah (Meg.
ii. 2) we read of mixed colours, of red, of sympathetic ink, and of certain
chemical compositions. Reed quills are mentioned in 3 John 13. The best of
these came from Egypt; and the use of a penknife would of course be
indispensable. Paper (from the Egyptian "papyrus") is mentioned in 2
John 12; parchment in 2 Timothy 4:13. Of this there were three kinds, according
as the skin was used either whole, or else split up into an outer and an inner
skin. The latter was used for the Mesusah. Shorter memoranda were made on
tablets, which in the Mishnah (Shab.
xii. 4) bear the same names as in Luke 1:63.
Before
passing to an account of elementary schools, it may be well, once and for all,
to say that the Rabbis did not approve of the same amount of instruction being
given to girls as to boys. More particularly they disapproved of their engaging
in legal studies--partly because they considered woman's mission and duties as
lying in other directions, partly because the subjects were necessarily not
always suitable for the other sex, partly because of the familiar intercourse
between the sexes to which such occupations would have necessarily led, and finally--shall
we say it?--because the Rabbis regarded woman's mind as not adapted for such
investigations. The unkindest thing, perhaps, which they said on this score
was, "Women are of a light mind"; though in its oft repetition the
saying almost reads like a semi-jocular way of cutting short a subject on which
discussion is disagreeable. However, instances of Rabbinically learned women do
occur. What their Biblical knowledge and what their religious influence was, we
learn not only from the Rabbis, but from the New Testament. Their attendance at
all public and domestic festivals, and in the synagogues, and the circumstance
that certain injunctions and observances of Rabbinic origin devolved upon them
also, prove that, though not learned in the law, there must have been among
them not a few who, like Lois and Eunice, could train a child in the knowledge
of the Scripture, or, like Priscilla, be qualified to explain even to an
Apollos the way of God more perfectly.
Supposing,
then, a child to be so far educated at home; suppose him, also, to be there
continually taught the commandments and observances, and, as the Talmud
expressly states, to be encouraged to repeat the prayers aloud, so as to
accustom him to it. At six years of age he would be sent to school; not to an
academy, or "beth hammedrash," which he would only attend if he
proved apt and promising; far less to the class-room of a great Rabbi, or the
discussions of the Sanhedrim, which marked a very advanced stage of study. We
are here speaking only of primary or elementary schools, such as even in the
time of our Lord were attached to every synagogue in the land. Passing over the
supposed or real Biblical notices of schools, and confining our attention
strictly to the period ending with the destruction of the Temple, we have first
a notice in the Talmud (Bab. B. 21
b), ascribing to Ezra an ordinance, that as many schoolmasters as chose should
be allowed to establish themselves in any place, and that those who had
formerly been settled there might not interfere with them. In all likelihood
this notice should not be taken in its literal sense, but as an indication that
the encouragement of schools and of education engaged the attention of Ezra and
of his successors. Of the Grecianised academies which the wicked high-priest
Jason tried to introduce in Jerusalem (2 Macc iv. 12,13) we do not speak,
because they were anti-Jewish in their spirit, and that to such extent, that
the Rabbis, in order to "make a hedge," forbade all gymnastic
exercises. The farther history and progress of Jewish schools are traced in the
following passage of the Talmud (Bab. B.
21 a): "If any one has merit, and deserves that his name should be kept in
remembrance, it is Joshua, the son of Gamaliel. Without him the law would have
fallen into oblivion in Israel. For they used to rest on this saying of the law
(Deu 11:19), 'Ye shall teach them.' Afterwards it was ordained that masters be
appointed at Jerusalem for the instruction of youth, as it is written (Isa
2:3), 'Out of Zion shall go forth the law.' But even so the remedy was not
effectual, only those who had fathers being sent to school, and the rest being
neglected. Hence it was arranged that Rabbis should be appointed in every
district, and that lads of sixteen or seventeen years should be sent to their
academies. But this institution failed, since every lad ran away if he was
chastised by his master. At last Joshua the son of Gamaliel arranged, that in
every province and in every town schoolmasters be appointed, who should take charge
of all boys from six or seven years of age." We may add at once, that the
Joshua here spoken of was probably the high-priest of that name who flourished
before the destruction of the Temple, and that unquestionably this farther
organisation implied at least the existence of elementary schools at an earlier
period.
Every
place, then, which numbered twenty-five boys of a suitable age, or, according
to Maimonides, one hundred and twenty families, was bound to appoint a
schoolmaster. More than twenty-five pupils or thereabouts he was not allowed to
teach in a class. If there were forty, he had to employ an assistant; if fifty,
the synagogue authorities appointed two teachers. This will enable us to
understand the statement, no doubt greatly exaggerated, that at the destruction
of Jerusalem there were no fewer than four hundred and eighty schools in the
metropolis. From another passage, which ascribes the fall of the Jewish state
to the neglect of the education of children, we may infer what importance popular
opinion attached to it. But indeed, to the Jew, child-life was something
peculiarly holy, and the duty of filling it with thoughts of God specially
sacred. It almost seems as if the people generally had retained among them the
echo of our Lord's saying, that their angels continually behold the face of our
Father which is in heaven. Hence the religious care connected with education.
The grand object of the teacher was moral as well as intellectual training. To
keep children from all intercourse with the vicious; to suppress all feelings
of bitterness, even though wrong had been done to one's parents; to punish all
real wrong-doing; not to prefer one child to another; rather to show sin in its
repulsiveness than to predict what punishment would follow, either in this or
the next world, so as not to "discourage" the child--such are some of
the rules laid down. A teacher was not even to promise a child anything which
he did not mean to perform, lest its mind be familiarised with falsehood.
Everything that might call up disagreeable or indelicate thoughts was to be
carefully avoided. The teacher must not lose patience if his pupil understood
not readily, but rather make the lesson more plain. He might, indeed, and he
should, punish when necessary, and, as one of the Rabbis put it, treat the
child like a young heifer whose burden was daily increased. But excessive
severity was to be avoided; and we are told of one teacher who was actually
dismissed from office for this reason. Where possible, try kindness; and if punishment
was to be administered, let the child be beaten with a strap, but never with a
rod. At ten the child began to study the Mishnah; at fifteen he must be ready
for the Talmud, which would be explained to him in a more advanced academy. If
after three, or at most five, years of tuition the child had not made decided
progress, there was little hope of his attaining to eminence. In the study of
the bible the pupil was to proceed from the book of Leviticus to the rest of
the Pentateuch, thence to the Prophets, and lastly to the Hagiographa. This
regulation was in accordance with the degree of value which the Rabbis attached
to these divisions of the Bible. In the case of advanced pupils the day was
portioned out--one part being devoted to the Bible, the other two to the
Mishnah and the Talmud. Every parent was also advised to have his child taught
swimming.
It has
already been stated that in general the school was held in the synagogue.
Commonly its teacher was the "chazan," or "minister" (Luke
4:20); by which expression we are to understand not a spiritual office, but
something like that of a beadle. This officer was salaried by the congregation;
nor was he allowed to receive fees from his pupils, lest he should show favour
to the rich. The expenses were met by voluntary and charitable contributions;
and in case of deficiency the most distinguished Rabbis did not hesitate to go
about and collect aid from the wealthy. The number of hours during which the
junior classes were kept in school was limited. As the close air of the
school-room might prove injurious during the heat of the day, lessons were
intermitted between ten a.m. and three p.m. For similar reasons, only four
hours were allowed for instruction between the seventeenth of Thamuz and the
ninth of Ab (about July and August), and teachers were forbidden to chastise
their pupils during these months. The highest honour and distinction attached
to the office of a teacher, if worthily discharged. Want of knowledge or of
method was regarded as sufficient cause for removing a teacher; but experience
was always deemed a better qualification than mere acquirements. No teacher was
employed who was not a married man. To discourage unwholesome rivalry, and to
raise the general educational standard, parents were prohibited from sending
their children to other than the schools of their own towns.
A very
beautiful trait was the care bestowed on the children of the poor and on
orphans. In the Temple there was a special receptacle--that "of the
secret"--for contributions, which were privately applied for the education
of the children of the pious poor. To adopt and bring up an orphan was regarded
as specially a "good work." This reminds us of the apostolic
description of a "widow indeed," as one "well reported for good
works"; who "had brought up children, lodged strangers, washed the
saints' feet, relieved the afflicted, diligently followed every good work"
(1 Tim 5:10). Indeed, orphans were the special charge of the whole congregation--not
thrust into poor-houses,--and the parochial authorities were even bound to
provide a fixed dowry for female orphans.
Such
were the surroundings, and such the atmosphere, in which Jesus of Nazareth
moved while tabernacling among men.
Chapter 9
Mothers, Daughters, and Wives in Israel
In
order accurately to understand the position of woman in Israel, it is only
necessary carefully to peruse the New Testament. The picture of social life
there presented gives a full view of the place which she held in private and in
public life. Here we do not find that separation, so common among Orientals at
all times, but a woman mingles freely with others both at home and abroad. So
far from suffering under social inferiority, she takes influential and often
leading part in all movements, specially those of a religious character. Above
all, we are wholly spared those sickening details of private and public
immorality with which contemporary classical literature abounds. Among Israel
woman was pure, the home happy, and the family hallowed by a religion which
consisted not only in public services, but entered into daily life, and
embraced in its observances every member of the household. It was so not only
in New Testament times but always in Israel. St. Peter's reference to "the
holy women" "in the old time" (1 Peter 3:5) is thoroughly in
accordance with Talmudical views. Indeed, his quotation of Genesis 18:12, and
its application: "Even as Sara obeyed Abraham, calling him lord,"
occur in precisely the same manner in Rabbinical writings (Tanch. 28, 6), where her respect and obedience are likewise set
forth as a pattern to her daughters. *
* The following illustration also occurs: A certain wise woman
said to her daughter before her marriage: "My child, stand before thy
husband and minister to him. If thou wilt act as his maiden he will be thy
slave, and honour thee as his mistress; but if thou exalt thyself against him,
he will be thy master, and thou shalt become vile in his eyes, like one of the
maidservants."
Some
further details may illustrate the matter better than arguments. The creation
of woman from the rib of Adam is thus commented on (Shab. 23): "It is as if Adam had exchanged a pot of earth for
a precious jewel." This, although Jewish wit caustically had it: "God
has cursed woman, yet all the world runs after her; He has cursed the ground,
yet all the world lives of it." In what reverence "the four
mothers," as the Rabbis designate Sarah, Rebekah, Leah, and Rachel, were
held, and what influence they exercised in patriarchal history, no attentive
reader of Scripture can fail to notice. And as we follow on the sacred story,
Miriam, who had originally saved Moses, leads the song of deliverance on the
other side of the flood, and her influence, though not always for good,
continued till her death (compare Micah 6:4). Then "the women whose heart
stirred them up in wisdom" contribute to the rearing of the Tabernacle;
Deborah works deliverance, and judgeth in Israel; and the piety of Manoah's
wife is at least as conspicuous, and more intelligent, than her husband's (Judg
13:23). So also is that of the mother of Samuel. In the times of the kings the
praises of Israel's maidens stir the jealousy of Saul; Abigail knows how to
avert the danger of her husband's folly; the wise woman of Tekoah is sent for to
induce the king to fetch his banished home; and the conduct of a woman "in
her wisdom" puts an end to the rebellion of Sheba. Later on, the constant
mention of queen mothers, and their frequent interference in the government,
shows their position. Such names as that of Huldah the prophetess, and the
idyllic narrative of the Shunammite, will readily occur to the memory. The
story of a woman's devotion forms the subject of the Book of Ruth; that of her
pure and faithful love, the theme or the imagery of the Song of Songs; that of
her courage and devotion the groundwork of the Book of Esther: while her worth
and virtues are enumerated in the closing chapter of the Book of Proverbs.
Again, in the language of the prophets the people of God are called "the
daughter," "the virgin daughter of Zion," "the daughter of
Jerusalem," "the daughter of Judah," etc.; and their
relationship to God is constantly compared to that of the married state. The
very terms by which woman is named in the Old Testament are significant. If the
man is Ish, his wife is Ishah, simply his equal; if the husband
is Gever, the ruler, the woman is, in
her own domain, Gevirah and Gevereth, the mistress (as frequently in
the history of Sarah and in other passages), or else the dweller at home (Nevath
bayith, Psa 68:12). *
* Similar expressions are Sarah
and Shiddah, both from roots meaning to rule. Nor is this inconsistent with
the use of the word Baal, to marry,
and Beulah, the married one, from Baal, a lord--even as Sarah "called
Abraham lord" (1 Peter 3:6, the expression used of her to Abimelech,
Genesis 20:3, being Beulah). Of
course it is not meant that these are the only words for females. But the
others, such as Bath and Naarah, are either simply feminine
terminations, or else, as Bethulah, Levush,
Nekevah, Almah, Rachem, descriptive of their physical state.
Nor is
it otherwise in New Testament times. The ministry of woman to our blessed Lord,
and in the Church, has almost become proverbial. Her position there marks
really not a progress upon, but the full carrying out of, the Old Testament
idea; or, to put the matter in another light, we ask no better than that any
one who is acquainted with classical antiquity should compare what he reads of
a Dorcas, of the mother of Mark, of Lydia, Priscilla, Phoebe, Lois, or Eunice,
with what he knows of the noble women of Greece and Rome at that period.
Of
course, against all this may be set the permission of polygamy, which undoubtedly was in force at the time of our Lord,
and the ease with which divorce might
be obtained. In reference to both these, however, it must be remembered that
they were temporary concessions to "the hardness" of the people's
heart. For, not only must the circumstances of the times and the moral state of
the Jewish and of neighbouring nations be taken into account, but there were
progressive stages of spiritual development. If these had not been taken into
account, the religion of the Old Testament would have been unnatural and an
impossibility. Suffice it, that "from the beginning it was not so,"
nor yet intended to be so in the end--the intermediate period thus marking the
gradual progress from the perfectness of the idea to the perfectness of its
realisation. Moreover, it is impossible to read the Old, and still more the New
Testament without gathering from it the conviction, that polygamy was not the
rule but the rare exception, so far as the people generally were concerned.
Although the practice in reference to divorce was certainly more lax, even the
Rabbis surrounded it with so many safeguards that, in point of fact, it must in
many cases have been difficult of accomplishment. In general, the whole
tendency of the Mosaic legislation, and even more explicitly that of later
Rabbinical ordinances, was in the direction of recognising the rights of woman,
with a scrupulousness which reached down even to the Jewish slave, and a
delicacy that guarded her most sensitive feelings. Indeed, we feel warranted in
saying, that in cases of dispute the law generally lent to her side. Of divorce we shall have to speak in the
sequel. But what the religious views and feelings both about it and monogamy
were at the time of Malachi, appears from the pathetic description of the altar
of God as covered with the tears of "the wife of youth," "the
wife of thy covenant," "thy companion," who had been "put
away" or "treacherously dealt" with (Mal 2:13 to end). The whole
is so beautifully paraphrased by the Rabbis that we subjoin it:
"If death hath snatched from thee the wife of youth,
It is as if the sacred city were,
And e'en the Temple, in thy pilgrim days,
Defiled, laid low, and levelled with the dust.
The man who harshly sends from him
His first-woo'd wife, the loving wife of youth,
For him the very altar of the Lord
Sheds forth its tears of bitter agony."
Where
the social intercourse between the sexes was nearly as unrestricted as among
ourselves, so far as consistent with Eastern manners, it would, of course, be
natural for a young man to make personal choice of his bride. Of this Scripture
affords abundant evidence. But, at any rate, the woman had, in case of
betrothal or marriage, to give her own free and expressed consent, without
which a union was invalid. Minors--in
the case of girls up to twelve years and one day--might be betrothed or given
away by their father. In that case, however, they had afterwards the right of
insisting upon divorce. Of course, it is not intended to convey that woman
attained her full position till under the New Testament. But this is only to
repeat what may be said of almost every social state and relationship. Yet it
is most marked how deeply the spirit of the Old Testament, which is essentially
that of the New also, had in this respect also penetrated the life of Israel.
St. Paul's warning (2 Cor 6:14) against being "unequally yoked
together," which is an allegorical application of Leviticus 19:19;
Deuteronomy 22:10, finds to some extent a counterpart in mystical Rabbinical
writings, where the last-mentioned passages is expressly applied to spiritually
unequal marriages. The admonition of 1 Corinthians 7:39 to marry "only in
the Lord," recalls many similar Rabbinical warnings, from which we select
the most striking. Men, we are told (Yalkut on Deu 21:15), are wont to marry
for one of four reasons--for passion, wealth, honour, or the glory of God. As
for the first-named class of marriages, their issue must be expected to be
"stubborn and rebellious" sons, as we may gather from the section
referring to such following upon that in Deuteronomy 21:11. In regard to
marriages for wealth, we are to learn a lesson from the sons of Eli, who sought
to enrich themselves in such manner, but of whose posterity it was said (1 Sam
2:36) that they should "crouch for a piece of silver and a morsel of
bread." Of marriages for the sake of connection, honour, and influence,
King Jehoram offered a warning, who became King Ahab's son-in-law, because that
monarch had seventy sons, whereas upon his death his widow Athaliah "arose
and destroyed all the seed royal" (2 Kings 11:1). But far otherwise is it
in case of marriage "in the name of heaven." The issue of such will
be children who "preserve Israel." In fact, the Rabbinical references
to marrying "in the name of heaven," or "for the name of God,"--in
God and for God--are so frequent and so emphatic, that the expressions used by
St. Paul must have come familiarly to him. Again, much that is said in 1
Corinthians 7 about the married estate, finds striking parallels in Talmudical
writings. One may here be mentioned, as explaining the expression (v 14):
"Else were your children unclean; but now are they holy." Precisely
the same distinction was made by the Rabbis in regard to proselytes, whose
children, if begotten before their conversion to Judaism, were said to be
"unclean"; if after that event to have been born "in
holiness," only that, among the Jews, both
parents required to profess Judaism, while St. Paul argues in the contrary
direction, and concerning a far different holiness than that which could be
obtained through any mere outward ceremony.
Some
further details, gathered almost at random, will give glimpses of Jewish home
life and of current views. It was by a not uncommon, though irreverent, mode of
witticism, that two forms of the same verb, sounding almost alike, were made to
express opposite experiences of marriage. It was common to ask a newly-married
husband: "Maza or Moze?"--"findeth" or
"found"; the first expression occurring in Proverbs 18:22, the second
in Ecclesiastes 7:26. A different sentiment is the following from the Talmud (Yeb. 62 b; Sanh. 76 b), the similarity of which to Ephesians 5:28 will be
immediately recognised: "He that loveth his wife as his own body,
honoureth her more than his own body, brings up his children in the right way,
and leads them in it to full age--of him the Scripture saith: 'Thou shalt know
that thy tabernacle shall be in peace' (Job 5:24)." Of all qualities those
most desired in woman were meekness, modesty, and shamefacedness. Indeed,
brawling, gossip in the streets, and immodest behaviour in public were
sufficient grounds for divorce. Of course, Jewish women would never have
attempted "teaching" in the synagogue, where they occupied a place
separate from the men--for Rabbinical study, however valued for the male sex,
was disapproved of in the case of women. Yet this direction of St. Paul (1 Tim
2:12): "I suffer not a woman to usurp authority over the man" findeth
some kind of parallel in the Rabbinical saying: "Whoever allows himself to
be ruled by his wife, shall call out, and no one will make answer to him."
It is
on similar grounds that the Rabbis argue, that man must seek after woman, and
not a woman after a man; only the reason which they assign for it sounds
strange. Man, they say, was formed from the ground--woman from man's rib;
hence, in trying to find a wife man only looks after what he had lost! This
formation of man from soft clay, and of woman from a hard bone, also
illustrated why man was so much more easily reconcilable than woman. Similarly,
it was observed, that God had not formed woman out of the head, lest she should
become proud; nor out of the eye, lest she should lust; nor out of the ear,
lest she should be curious; nor out of the mouth, lest she should be talkative;
nor out of the heart, lest she should be jealous; nor out of the hand, lest she
should be covetous; nor out of the foot, lest she be a busybody; but out of the
rib, which was always covered. Modesty was, therefore, a prime quality. It was
no doubt chiefly in jealous regard for this, that women were interdicted engaging
in Rabbinical studies; and a story is related to show how even the wisest of
women, Beruria, was thereby brought to the brink of extreme danger. It is not
so easy to explain why women were dispensed from all positive obligations
(commands, but not prohibitions) that were not general in their bearing (Kidd. 1. 7,8), but fixed to certain
periods of time (such as wearing the phylacteries, etc.), and from that of
certain prayers, unless it be that woman was considered not her own mistress
but subject to others, or else that husband and wife were regarded as one, so
that his merits and prayers applied to her as well. Indeed, this view, at least
so far as the meritorious nature of a man's engagement with the law is
concerned, is expressly brought forward, and women are accordingly admonished
to encourage their husbands in all such studies.
We can
understand how, before the coming of the Messiah, marriage should have been
looked upon as of religious obligation. Many passages of Scripture were at
least quoted in support of this idea.
Ordinarily, a young man was expected to enter the wedded state (according to
Maimonides) at the age of sixteen or seventeen, while the age of twenty may be
regarded as the utmost limit conceded, unless study so absorbed time and attention
as to leave no leisure for the duties of married life. Still it was thought
better even to neglect study than to remain single. Yet money cares on account
of wife and children were dreaded. The same comparison is used in reference to
them, which our Lord applies to quite a different "offence," that
against the "little ones" (Luke 17:2). Such cares are called by the
Rabbis, "a millstone round the neck" (Kidd. 29 b). In fact, the expression seems to have become
proverbial, like so many others which are employed in the New Testament.
We read
in the Gospel that, when the Virgin-mother "was espoused to Joseph, before
they came together, she was found with child of the Holy Ghost. Then Joseph her
husband, being a just man, and not willing to make her a public example, was
minded to put her away privily" (Matt 1:18,19). The narrative implies a
distinction between betrothal and marriage--Joseph being at the time
betrothed, but not actually married to the Virgin-mother. Even in the Old
Testament a distinction is made between betrothal
and marriage. The former was marked
by a bridal present (or Mohar, Gen
34:12; Exo 22:17; 1 Sam 18:25), with which the father, however, would in
certain circumstances dispense. From the moment of her betrothal a woman was
treated as if she were actually married. The union could not be dissolved,
except by regular divorce; breach of faithfulness was regarded as adultery; and
the property of the women became virtually that of her betrothed, unless he had
expressly renounced it (Kidd. ix. 1).
But even in that case he was her natural heir. It is impossible here to enter
into the various legal details, as, for example, about property or money which
might come to a woman after betrothal or marriage. The law adjudicated this to
the husband, yet with many restrictions, and with infinite delicacy towards the
woman, as if reluctant to put in force the rights of the stronger (Kidd. viii. 1, etc.). From the Mishnah (Bab. B. x. 4) we also learn that there
were regular Shitre Erusin, or
writings of betrothal, drawn up by the authorities (the costs being paid by the
bridegroom). These stipulated the mutual obligations, the dowry, and all other
points on which the parties had agreed. The Shitre
Erusin were different from the regular Chethubah
(literally, writing), or marriage
contract, without which the Rabbis regarded a marriage as merely legalised
concubinage (Cheth. v. 1). The Chethubah provided a settlement of at
least two hundred denars for a maiden, and one hundred denars for a widow,
while the priestly council at Jerusalem fixed four hundred denars for a
priest's daughter. Of course these sums indicate only the legal minimum, and might be increased
indefinitely at pleasure, though opinions differ whether any larger sums might
be legally exacted, if matters did not go beyond betrothal. The form at present
in use among the Jews sets forth, that the bridegroom weds his bride "according
to the law of Moses and of Israel"; that he promises "to please, to
honour, to nourish, and to care for her, as is the manner of the men of
Israel," adding thereto the woman's consent, the document being signed by
two witnesses. In all probability this was substantially the form in olden
times. In Jerusalem and in Galilee--where it was said that men in their choice
had regard to "a fair degree," while in the rest of Judaea they
looked a good deal after money--widows had the right of residence in their
husband's house secured to them.
On the
other hand, a father was bound to provide a dowry (nedan, nedanjah) for his daughter conformable to her station in
life; and a second daughter could claim a portion equal to that of her elder
sister, or else one-tenth of all immovable property. In case of the father's
death, the sons, who, according to Jewish law, were his sole heirs, were bound
to maintain their sisters, even though this would have thrown them upon public
charity, and to endow each with a tenth part of what had been left. The dowry,
whether in money, property, or jewellery, was entered into the marriage
contract, and really belonged to the wife, the husband being obliged to add to
it one-half more, if it consisted of money or money's value; and if of
jewellery, etc., to assign to her four-fifths of its value. In case of
separation (not divorce) he was bound to allow her a proper aliment, and to
re-admit her to his table and house on the Sabbath-eve. A wife was entitled to
one-tenth of her dowry for pin-money. If a father gave away his daughter
without any distinct statement about her dowry, he was bound to allow her at least
fifty sus; and if it had been
expressly stipulated that she was to have no dowry at all, it was delicately
enjoined that the bridegroom should, before
marriage, give her sufficient for the necessary outfit. An orphan was to
receive a dowry of at least fifty sus
from the parochial authorities. A husband could not oblige his wife to leave
the Holy Land nor the city of Jerusalem, nor yet to change a town for a country
residence, or vice versa, nor a good for a bad house. These are only a few of
the provisions which show how carefully the law protected the interests of
women. To enter into farther details would lead beyond our present object. All
this was substantially settled at the betrothal, which, in Judaea at least,
seems to have been celebrated by a feast. Only a bona fide breach of these
arrangements, or wilful fraud, was deemed valid ground for dissolving the bond
once formed. Otherwise, as already noted, a regular divorce was necessary.
According
to Rabbinical law certain formalities were requisite to make a betrothal
legally valid. These consisted either in handing to a woman, directly or
through messengers, a piece of money, however small, or else a letter, *
provided it were in each case expressly stated before witnesses, that the man
thereby intended to espouse the woman as his wife.
* There was also a third mode of espousal--simply by cohabitation,
but this was very strongly disapproved by the Rabbis.
The
marriage followed after a longer or shorter interval, the limits of which,
however, were fixed by law. The ceremony itself consisted in leading the bride
into the house of the bridegroom, with certain formalities, mostly dating from
very ancient times. Marriage with a maiden was commonly celebrated on a
Wednesday afternoon, which allowed the first days of the week for preparation,
and enabled the husband, if he had a charge to prefer against the previous
chastity of his bride, to make immediate complaint before the local Sanhedrim,
which sat every Thursday. On the other hand, the marriage of a widow was
celebrated on Thursday afternoon, which left three days of the week for
"rejoicing with her." This circumstance enables us, with some
certainty, to arrange the date of the events which preceded the marriage in
Cana. Inferring from the accompanying festivities that it was the marriage of a
maiden, and therefore took place on a Wednesday, we have the following
succession of events:--On Thursday
(beginning as every Jewish day with the previous evenint), testimony of the
Baptist to the Sanhedrim-deputation from Jerusalem. On Friday (John 1:29), "John seeth Jesus coming unto him,"
and significantly preacheth the first sermon about "the Lamb of God which
taketh away the sin of the world." On Saturday
(v 35), John's second sermon on the same text; the consequent conversion of St.
John and St. Andrew, and the calling of St. Peter. On Sunday (v 43), our Lord Himself preacheth His first Messianic
sermon, and calls Philip and Nathanael. On "the third day" after it,
that is, on Wednesday, was the
marriage in Cana of Galilee. The significance of these dates, when compared
with those in the week of our Lord's Passion, will be sufficiently evident.
But
this is not all that may be learned from the account of the marriage in Cana.
Of course, there was a "marriage-feast," as on all these occasions.
For this reason, marriages were not celebrated either on the Sabbath, or on the
day before or after it, lest the Sabbath-rest should be endangered. Nor was it
lawful to wed on any of the three annual festivals, in order, as the Rabbis put
it, "not to mingle one joy (that of the marriage) with another (that of
the festival)." As it was deemed a religious duty to give pleasure to the
newly-married couple, the merriment at times became greater than the more
strict Rabbis approved. Accordingly, it is said of one, that to produce gravity
he broke a vase worth about 25 pounds; of another, that at his son's wedding he
broke a costly glass; and of a third, that being asked to sin, he exclaimed,
Woe to us, for we must all die! For, as it is added (Ber. 31 a): "It is forbidden to man, that his mouth be filled
with laughter in this world (dispensation), as it is written, 'Then our mouth
was filled with laughter, and our tongue with singing.' When is that to be? At
the time when 'they shall sing among the heathen, The Lord hath done great
things for them.'"
It
deserves notice, that at the marriage in Cana there is no mention of "the
friends of the bridegroom," or, as we would call them, the groomsmen. This
was in strict accordance with Jewish custom, for groomsmen were customary in Judaea, but not in Galilee (Cheth. 25 a). This also casts light upon
the locality where John 3:29 was spoken, in which "the friend of the
bridegroom" is mentioned. But this expression is quite different from that
of "children of the bridechamber," which occurs in Matthew 9:15,
where the scene is once more laid in Galilee. The term "children of the
bridechamber" is simply a translation of the Rabbinical "bene Chuppah," and means the guests
invited to the bridal. In Judaea there were at every marriage two groomsmen or "friends of the
bridegroom"--one for the bridegroom, the other for his bride. Before
marriage, they acted as a kind of intermediaries between the couple; at the
wedding they offered gifts, waited upon the bride and bridegroom, and attended
them to the bridal chamber, being also, as it were, the guarantors of the
bride's virgin chastity. Hence, when St. Paul tells the Corinthians (2 Cor
11:2): "I am jealous over you with godly jealousy; for I have espoused you
to one husband, that I may present you as a chaste virgin to Christ," he
speaks, as it were, in the character of groomsman or "bridegroom's
friend," who had acted as such at the spiritual union of Christ with the
Corinthian Church. And we know that it was specially the duty of the
"friend of the bridegroom" so to present to him his bride. Similarly
it was his also, after marriage, to maintain proper terms between the couple,
and more particularly to defend the good fame of the bride against all imputations.
It may interest some to know that his custom also was traced up to highest
authority. Thus, in the spiritual union of Israel with their God, Moses is
spoken of as "the friend of the bridegroom" who leads out the bride
(Exo 19:17); while Jehovah, as the bridegroom, meets His Church at Sinai (Psa
68:7; Pirke di R. El. 41). Nay, in
some mystic writings God is described as acting "the friend of the
bridegroom," when our first parents met in Eden. There is a touch of
poetry in the application of Ezekiel 28:13 to that scene, when angels led the
choir, and decked and watched the bridal-bed (Ab. de R. Nathan iv. and xii.). According to another ancient
Rabbinical commentary (Ber. R. viii),
God Almighty Himself took the cup of blessing and spoke the benediction, while
Michael and Gabriel acted the "bridegroom's friends" to our first
parents when they wedded in Paradise.
With
such a "benediction," preceded by a brief formula, with which the
bride was handed over to her husband (Tobit vii. 13), the wedding festivities
commenced. And so the pair were led towards the bridal chamber (Cheder) and the bridal bed (Chuppah). The bride went with her hair
unloosed. Ordinarily, it was most strictly enjoined upon women to have their
head and hair carefully covered. This may throw some light upon the difficult
passage, 1 Corinthians 11:1-10. We must bear in mind that the apostle there
argues with Jews, and that on their own
ground, convincing them by a reference to their own views, customs, and
legends of the propriety of the practice which he enjoins. From that point of
view the propriety of a woman having her head "covered" could not be
called in question. The opposite would, to a Jew, have indicated immodesty.
Indeed, it was the custom in the case of a woman accused of adultery to have
her hair "shorn or shaven," at the same time using this formula:
"Because thou hast departed from the manner of the daughters of Israel,
who go with their head covered;...therefore that has befallen thee which thou hast
chosen." This so far explains verses 5 and 6. The expression
"power," as applied in verse 10 to the head of woman, seems to refer
to this covering, indicating, as it did, that she was under the power of her
husband, while the very difficult addition, "because of the angels,"
may either allude to the presence of the angels and to the well-known Jewish
view (based, no doubt, on truth) that those angels may be grieved or offended
by our conduct, and bear the sad tidings before the throne of God, or it may
possibly refer to the very ancient Jewish belief, that the evil spirits gained
power over a woman who went with her head bare.
The
custom of a bridal veil--either for the bride alone, or spread over the
couple--was of ancient date. It was interdicted for a time by the Rabbis after
the destruction of Jerusalem. Still more ancient was the wearing of crowns
(Cant 3:11; Isa 61:10; Eze 16:12), which was also prohibited after the last
Jewish war. Palm and myrtle branches were borne before the couple, grain or
money was thrown about, and music preceded the procession, in which all who met
it were, as a religious duty, expected to join. The Parable of the Ten Virgins,
who, with their lamps, were in expectancy of the bridegroom (Matt 25:1), is
founded on Jewish custom. For, according to Rabbinical authority, such lamps
carried on the top of staves were frequently used, while ten is the number always mentioned in connection with public
solemnities. * The marriage festivities generally lasted a week, but the bridal
days extended over a full month. **
* According to R. Simon (on Chel.
ii. 8) it was an Eastern custom that, when the bride was led to her future
home, "they carried before the party about ten" such lamps.
** The practice of calling a wife a bride during the first year of
her marriage is probably based on Deuteronomy 24:5.
Having
entered thus fully on the subject of marriage, a few further particulars may be
of interest. The bars to marriage mentioned in the Bible are sufficiently
known. To these the Rabbis added others, which have been arranged under two
heads--as farther extending the laws of kindred (to their secondary degrees), and as intended to guard morality. The former
were extended over the whole line of forbidden kindred, where that line was
direct, and to one link farther where the line became indirect--as, for
example, to the wife of a maternal uncle, or to the step- mother of a wife. In
the category of guards to morality we include such prohibitions as that a
divorced woman might not marry her seducer, nor a man the woman to whom he had
brought her letter of divorce, or in whose case he had borne testimony; or of
marriage with those not in their right senses, or in a state of drunkenness; or
of the marriage of minors, or under fraud, etc. A widower had to wait over
three festivals, a widow three months, before re-marrying, or if she was with
child or gave suck, for two years. A woman might not be married a third time;
no marriage could take place within thirty days of the death of a near
relative, nor yet on the Sabbath, nor on a feast-day, etc. Of the marriage to a
deceased husband's brother (or the next of kin), in case of childlessness, it
is unnecessary here to speak, since although the Mishnah devotes a whole
tractate to it (Yebamoth), and it was
evidently customary at the time of Christ (Mark 12:19, etc.), the practice was
considered as connected with the territorial possession of Palestine, and
ceased with the destruction of the Jewish commonwealth (Bechar. i. 7). A priest was to inquire into the legal descent of
his wife (up to four degrees if the daughter of a priest, otherwise up to five
degrees), except where the bride's father was a priest in actual service, or a
member of the Sanhedrim. The high-priest's bride was to be a maid not older
than six months beyond her puberty.
The
fatal ease with which divorce could be obtained, and its frequency, appear from
the question addressed to Christ by the Pharisees: "Is it lawful for a man
to put away his wife for every cause?" (Matt 19:3), and still more from
the astonishment with which the disciples had listened to the reply of the
Saviour (v 10). That answer was much wider in its range than our Lord's initial
teaching in the Sermon on the Mount (Matt 5:32). To the latter no Jew could
have had any objection, even though its morality would have seemed elevated
beyond their highest standard, represented in this case by the school of
Shammai, while that of Hillel, and still more Rabbi Akiba, presented the lowest
opposite extreme. But in reply to the Pharisees, our Lord placed the whole
question on grounds which even the strictest Shammaite would have refused to
adopt. For the farthest limit to which he would have gone would have been to
restrict the cause of divorce to "a matter of uncleanness" (Deu
24:1), by which he would probably have understood not only a breach of the
marriage vow, but of the laws and customs of the land. In fact, we know that it
included every kind of impropriety, such as going about with loose hair,
spinning in the street, familiarly talking with men, ill-treating her husband's
parents in his presence, brawling, that is, "speaking to her husband so
loudly that the neighbours could hear her in the adjoining house" (Chethub. vii. 6), a general bad
reputation, or the discovery of fraud before marriage. On the other hand, the
wife could insist on being divorced if her husband were a leper, or affected
with polypus, or engaged in a disagreeable or dirty trade, such as that of a
tanner or coppersmith. One of the cases in which divorce was obligatory was, if
either party had become heretical, or ceased to profess Judaism. But even so,
there were at least checks to the danger of general lawlessness, such as the
obligation of paying to a wife her portion, and a number of minute ordinances
about formal letters of divorce,
without which no divorce was legal, * and which had to be couched in explicit
terms, handed to the woman herself, and that in presence of two witnesses, etc.
* The Jews have it that a woman "is loosed from the law of
her husband" by only one of two things: death or a letter of divorce;
hence Romans 7:2, 3.
According
to Jewish law there were four obligations incumbent on a wife towards her
husband, and ten by which he was bound. Of the latter, three are referred to in
Exodus 21:9, 10; the other seven include her settlement, medical treatment in
case of sickness, redemption from captivity, a respectable funeral, provision
in his house so long as she remained a widow and had not been paid her dowry,
the support of her daughters till they were married, and a provision that her
sons should, besides receiving their portion of the father's inheritance, also
share in what had been settled upon her. The obligations upon the wife were,
that all her gains should belong to her husband, as also what came to her after
marriage by inheritance; that the husband should have the usufruct of her
dowry, and of any gains by it, provided he had the administration of it, in
which case, however, he was also responsible for any loss; and that he should
be considered her heir-at-law.
What
the family life among the godly in Israel must have been, how elevated its
tone, how loving its converse, or how earnestly devoted its mothers and
daughters, appears sufficiently from the gospel story, from that in the book of
Acts, and from notices in the apostolic letters. Women, such as the
Virgin-mother, or Elisabeth, or Anna, or those who enjoyed the privilege of
ministering to the Lord, or who, after His death, tended and watched for His
sacred body, could not have been quite solitary in Palestine; we find their
sisters in a Dorcas, a Lydia, a Phoebe, and those women of whom St. Paul speaks
in Philippians 4:3, and whose lives he sketches in his Epistles to Timothy and
Titus. Wives such as Priscilla, mothers such as that of Zebedee's children, or
of Mark, or like St. John's "elect lady," or as Lois and Eunice, must
have kept the moral atmosphere pure and sweet, and shed precious light on their
homes and on society, corrupt to the core as it was under the sway of
heathenism. What and how they taught their households, and that even under the
most disadvantageous outward circumstances, we learn from the history of
Timothy. And although they were undoubtedly in that respect without many of the
opportunities which we enjoy, there was one sweet practice of family religion,
going beyond the prescribed prayers, which enabled them to teach their children
from tenderest years to intertwine the Word of God with their daily devotion
and daily life. For it was the custom to teach a child some verse of Holy Scripture
beginning or ending with precisely the same letters as its Hebrew name, and
this birthday text or guardian-promise the child was day by day to insert in
its prayers. Such guardian words, familiar to the mind from earliest years,
endeared to the heart by tenderest recollections, would remain with the youth
in life's temptations, and come back amid the din of manhood's battle.
Assuredly, of Jewish children so reared, so trained, so taught, it might be
rightly said: "Take heed that ye despise not one of these little ones; for
I say unto you, That in heaven their angels do always behold the face of My
Father which is in heaven."
Chapter 10
In Death and After Death
A
sadder picture could scarcely be drawn than that of the dying Rabbi Jochanan
ben Saccai, that "light of Israel" immediately before and after the
destruction of the Temple, and for two years the president of the Sanhedrim. We
read in the Talmud (Ber. 28 b) that,
when his disciples came to see him on his death-bed, he burst into tears. To
their astonished inquiry why he, "the light of Israel, the right pillar of
the Temple, and its mighty hammer," betrayed such signs of fear, he
replied: "If I were now to be brought before an earthly king, who lives
to-day and dies to-morrow, whose wrath and whose bonds are not everlasting, and
whose sentence of death, even, is not that to everlasting death, who can be
assuaged by arguments, or perhaps bought off by money--I should tremble and
weep; how much more reason have I for it, when about to be led before the King
of kings, the Holy One, blessed be He, Who liveth and abideth for ever, Whose
chains are chains for evermore, and Whose sentence of death killeth for ever,
Whom I cannot assuage with words, nor bribe by money! And not only so, but
there are before me two ways, one to paradise and the other to hell, and I know
not which of the two ways I shall have to go--whether to paradise or to hell:
how, then, shall I not shed tears?" Side by side with this we may place
the opposite saying of R. Jehudah, called the Holy, who, when he died, lifted
up both his hands to heaven, protesting that none of those ten fingers had
broken the law of God! It were difficult to say which of these two is more
contrary to the light and liberty of the Gospel--the utter hopelessness of the
one, or the apparent presumption of the other.
And yet
these sayings also recall to us something in the Gospel. For there also we read
of two ways--the one to paradise, the other to destruction, and of fearing not
those who can kill the body, but rather Him who, after He hath killed the body,
hath power to cast into hell. Nor, on the other hand, was the assurance of St.
Stephen, of St. James, or of St. Paul, less confident than that of Jehudah,
called the Holy, though it expressed itself in a far different manner and
rested on quite other grounds. Never are the voices of the Rabbis more
discordant, and their utterances more contradictory or unsatisfying than in
view of the great problems of humanity: sin, sickness, death, and the
hereafter. Most truly did St. Paul, taught at the feet of Gamaliel in all the
traditions and wisdom of the fathers, speak the inmost conviction of every
Christian Rabbinist, that it is only our Saviour Jesus Christ Who "hath
brought life and immortality to light through the Gospel" (2 Tim 1:10).
When
the disciples asked our Lord, in regard to the "man which was blind from
his birth": "master, who did sin, this man, or his parents, that he
was born blind?" (John 9:1,2) we vividly realise that we hear a strictly
Jewish question. It was just such as was likely to be raised, and it exactly
expressed Jewish belief. That children benefited or suffered according to the
spiritual state of their parents was a doctrine current among the Jews. But
they also held that an unborn child might contract guilt, since the Yezer ha-ra, or evil disposition which
was present from its earliest formation, might even then be called into
activity by outward circumstances. And sickness was regarded as alike the
punishment for sin and its atonement. But we also meet with statements which
remind us of the teaching of Hebrews 12:5, 9. In fact, the apostolic quotation
from Proverbs 3 is made for exactly the same purpose in the Talmud (Ber. 5 a), in how different a spirit
will appear from the following summary. It appears that two of the Rabbis had
disagreed as to what were "the chastisements of love," the one
maintaining, on the ground of Psalm 94:12, that they were such as did not
prevent a man from study, the other inferring from Psalm 66:20 that they were
such as did not hinder prayer. Superior authority decided that both kinds were
"chastisements of love," at the same time answering the quotation
from Psalm 94 by proposing to read, not "teachest him," but "teachest us
out of Thy law." But that the law teaches us that chastisements are of
great advantage might be inferred as follows: If, according to Exodus 21:26,
27, a slave obtained freedom through the chastisement of his master--a
chastisement which affected only one of his members--how much more must those
chastisements effect which purified the whole body of man? Moreover, as another
Rabbi reminds us, the "covenant" is mentioned in connection with salt
(Lev 2:13), and also in connection with chastisements (Deu 28:58). "As is
the covenant," spoken of in connection with salt, which gives taste to the
meat, so also is "the covenant" spoken of in connection with
chastisements, which purge away all the sins of a man. Indeed, as a third Rabbi
says: "Three good gifts hath the Holy One--blessed be He!--given to
Israel, and each of them only through sufferings--the law, the land of Israel,
and the world to come." The law, according to Psalm 94:12; the land,
according to Deuteronomy 8:5, which is immediately followed by verse 7; and the
world to come, according to Proverbs 6:23.
As on
most other subjects, the Rabbis were accurate and keen observers of the laws of
health, and their regulations are often far in advance of modern practice. From
many allusions in the Old Testament we infer that the science of medicine,
which was carried to comparatively great perfection in Egypt, where every
disease had its own physician, was also cultivated in Israel. Thus the sin of
Asia, in trusting too much to earthly physicians, is specially reproved (2
Chron 16:12). In New Testament times we read of the woman who had spent all her
substance, and suffered so much at the hands of physicians (Mark 5:26); while
the use of certain remedies, such as oil and wine, in the treatment of wounds
(Luke 10:34), seems to have been popularly known. St. Luke was a
"physician" (Col 4:14); and among the regular Temple officials there
was a medical man, whose duty it was to attend to the priesthood who, from
ministering barefoot, must have been specially liable to certain diseases. The
Rabbis ordained that every town must have at least one physician, who was also
to be qualified to practise surgery, or else a physician and a surgeon. Some of
the Rabbis themselves engaged in medical pursuits: and, in theory at least,
every practitioner ought to have had their licence. To employ a heretic or a
Hebrew Christian was specially prohibited, though a heathen might, if needful,
be called in. But, despite their patronage of the science, caustic sayings also
occur. "Physician, heal thyself," is really a Jewish proverb;
"Live not in a city whose chief is a medical man"--he will attend to
public business and neglect his patients; "The best among doctors deserves
Gehenna"--for his bad treatment of some, and for his neglect of others. It
were invidious to enter into a discussion of the remedies prescribed in those
times, although, to judge from what is advised in such cases, we can scarcely
wonder that the poor woman in the gospel was nowise benefited, but rather the
worse of them (Mark 5:26). The means recommended were either generally
hygienic--and in this respect the Hebrews contrast favourably even with
ourselves--or purely medicinal, or else sympathetic, or even magical. The
prescriptions consisted of simples or
of compounds, vegetables being far
more used than minerals. Cold-water compresses, the external and internal use
of oil and of wine, baths (medicated and other), and a certain diet, were
carefully indicated in special diseases. Goats'-milk and barley-porridge were
recommended in all diseases attended by wasting. Jewish surgeons seem even to
have known how to operate for cataract.
Ordinarily,
life was expected to be protracted, and death regarded as alike the punishment
and the expiation of sin. To die within fifty years of age was to be cut off;
within fifty-two, to die the death of Samuel the prophet; at sixty years of
age, it was regarded as death at the hands of Heaven; at seventy, as that of an
old man; and at eighty, as that of strength. Premature death was likened to the
falling off of unripe fruit, or the extinction of a candle. To depart without
having a son was to die, otherwise it
was to fall asleep. The latter was
stated to have been the case with David; the former with Joab. If a person had
finished his work, his was regarded as the death of the righteous, who is
gathered to his fathers. Tradition (Ber.
8 a) inferred, by a peculiar Rabbinical mode of exegesis, from a word in Psalm
62:12, that there were 903 different kinds of dying. The worst of these was angina, which was compared to tearing
out a thread from a piece of wool; while the sweetest and gentlest, which was
compared to drawing a hair out of milk, was called "death by a kiss."
The latter designation originated from Numbers 33:38 and Deuteronomy 34:5, in
which Aaron and Moses are respectively said to have died "according to the
word"--literally, "by the mouth of Jehovah." Over six persons,
it was said, the angel of death had had no power--viz., Abraham, Isaac, and
Jacob, because they had seen their work quite completed; and over Miriam,
Aaron, and Moses, who had died by "the kiss of God." If premature
death was the punishment of sin, the righteous died because others were to
enter on their work--Joshua on that of Moses, Solomon on that of David, etc.
But, when the time for death came, anything might serve for its infliction, or,
to put it in Rabbinical language, "O Lord, all these are Thy
servants"; for "whither a man was to go, thither his feet would carry
him."
Certain
signs were also noted as to the time and manner of dying. Sudden death was
called "being swallowed up," death after one day's illness, that of
rejection; after two days', that of despair; after four days', that of reproof;
after five days', a natural death. Similarly, the posture of the dying was
carefully marked. To die with a happy smile, or at least with a bright
countenance, or looking upward, was a good omen; to look downward, to seem
disturbed, to weep, or even to turn to the wall, were evil signs. On recovering
from illness, it was enjoined to return special thanks. It was a curious
superstition (Ber. 55 b), that, if
any one announced his illness on the first day of its occurrence, it might tend
to make him worse, and that only on the second day should prayers be offered
for him. Lastly, we may mention in this connection, as possibly throwing light
on the practice referred to by St. James (James 5:14), that it was the custom
to anoint the sick with a mixture of oil, wine, and water, the preparation of
which was even allowed on the Sabbath (Jer.
Ber. ii. 2).
When
our Lord mentioned visitation of the sick among the evidences of that religion
which would stand the test of the judgment day (Matt 25:36), He appealed to a
principle universally acknowledged among the Jews. The great Jewish doctor
Maimonides holds that this duty takes precedence of all other good works, and
the Talmud goes even so far as to assert, that whoever visits the sick shall
deliver his soul from Gehenna (Ned.
40- a). Accordingly, a Rabbi, discussing the meaning of the expression,
"Ye shall walk after the Lord your God" (Deu 13:4), arrives at the
conclusion, that it refers to the imitation of what we read in Scripture of His
doings. Thus God clothed the naked (Gen 3:21), and so should we; He visited the
sick (Gen 18:1); He comforted the mourners, (Gen 25:11); and He buried the dead
(Deu 35:6); leaving us in all this an ensample that we should follow in His
footsteps (Sota 14 a). It was
possibly to encourage to this duty, or else in reference to the good effects of
sympathy upon the sick, that we are told, that whoever visits the sick takes
away a sixtieth part of his sufferings (Ned.
39 b). Nor was the service of love to stop here; for, as we have seen, the
burial of the dead was quite as urgent a duty as the visitation of the sick. As
the funeral procession passed, every one was expected, if possible, to join the
convoy. The Rabbis applied to the observance of this direction Proverbs 14:32,
and 19:17; and to its neglect Proverbs 17:5 (Ber. 18 a). Similarly, all reverence was shown towards the remains
of the dead, and burying-places were kept free from every kind of profanation,
and even from light conversation.
Burial
followed generally as soon as possible after death (Matt 9:23; Acts 5:6,10,
8:2), no doubt partly on sanitary grounds. For special reasons, however (Acts
9:37,39), or in the case of parents, there might be a delay even of days. The
preparations for the burial of our Lord, mentioned in the gospels--the ointment
against His burial (Matt 26:12), the spices and ointments (Luke 23:56), the
mixture of myrrh and aloes--find their literal confirmation in what the Rabbis
tell us of the customs of the period (Ber.
53 a). At one time the wasteful expenditure connected with funerals was so
great as to involve in serious difficulties the poor, who would not be outdone
by their neighbours. The folly extended not only to the funeral rites, the
burning of spices at the grave, and the depositing of money and valuables in
the tomb, but even to luxury in the wrappings of the dead body. At last a
much-needed reform was introduced by Rabbi Gamaliel, who left directions that
he was to be buried in simple linen garments. In recognition of this a cup is
to this day emptied to his memory at funeral meals. His grandson limited even
the number of graveclothes to one
dress. The burial-dress is made of the most inexpensive linen, and bears the
name of (Tachrichin)
"wrappings," or else the "travelling-dress." At present it
is always white, but formerly any other colour might be chosen, of which we
have some curious instances. Thus one Rabbi would not be buried in white, lest
he might seem like one glad, nor yet in black, so as not to appear to sorrow,
but in red; while another ordered a white dress, to show that he was not
ashamed of his works; and yet a third directed that he should have his shoes
and stockings, and a stick, to be ready for the resurrection! As we know from
the gospel, the body was wrapped in "linen clothes," and the face
bound about with a napkin (John 11:44, 20:5,7).
The
body having been properly prepared, the funeral rites proceeded, as described
in the gospels. From the account of the funeral procession at Nain, which the
Lord of life arrested (Luke 7:11-15), many interesting details may be learned. First, burying-places were always outside cities (Matt 8:28, 27:7,52,53;
John 11:30,31). Neither watercourses nor public roads were allowed to pass
through them, nor sheep to graze there. We read of public and private
burying-places--the latter chiefly in gardens and caves. It was the practice to
visit the graves (John 11:31) partly to mourn and partly to pray. It was
unlawful to eat or drink, to read, or even to walk irreverently among them. Cremation was denounced as a purely
heathen practice, contrary to the whole spirit of Old Testament teaching. Secondly, we know that, as at Nain, the
body was generally carried open on a bier, or else in an open coffin, the
bearers frequently changing to give an opportunity to many to take part in a
work deemed so meritorious. Graves in fields or in the open were often marked
by memorial columns. Children less than a month old were carried to the burying
by their mothers; those under twelve months were borne on a bed or stretcher. Lastly, the order in which the
procession seems to have wound out of Nain exactly accords with what we know of
the customs of the time and place. It was outside the city gate that the Lord
with His disciples met the sad array. Had it been in Judaea the hired mourners
and musicians would have preceded the bier; in Galilee they followed. First
came the women, for, as an ancient Jewish commentary explains--woman, who
brought death into our world, ought to lead the way in the funeral procession.
Among them our Lord readily recognised the widowed mother, whose only treasure
was to be hidden from her for ever. Behind the bier followed, obedient to
Jewish law and custom, "much people of the city." The sight of her
sorrow touched the compassion of the Son of Man; the presence of death called
forth the power of the Son of God. To her only He spoke, what in the form of a
question He said to the woman who mourned at His own grave, ignorant that death
had been swallowed up in victory, and what He still speaks to us from heaven,
"Weep not!" He bade not the procession halt, but, as He touched the
bier, they that bore on it the dead body stood still. It was a marvellous sight
outside the gate of Nain. The Rabbi and His disciples should reverently have
joined the procession; they arrested it. One word of power burst inwards the
sluices of Hades, and out flowed once again the tide of life. "He that was
dead sat up on his bier, and began to speak"--what words of wonderment we
are not told. It must have been like the sudden wakening, which leaves not on
the consciousness the faintest trace of the dream. Not of that world but of this
would his speech be, though he knew he had been over there, and its dazzling
light made earth's sunshine so dim, that ever afterwards life must have seemed
to him like the sitting up on his bier, and its faces and voices like those of
the crowd which followed him to his burying.
At the
grave, on the road to which the procession repeatedly halted, when short
addresses were occasionally delivered, there was a funeral oration. If the
grave were in a public cemetery, at least a foot and a half must intervene
between each sleeper. The caves, or rock-hewn sepulchres, consisted of an
ante-chamber in which the bier was deposited, and an inner or rather lower cave
in which the bodies were deposited, in a recumbent position, in niches.
According to the Talmud these abodes of the dead were usually six feet long,
nine feet wide, and ten feet high. Here there were niches for eight bodies:
three on each side of the entrance, and two opposite. Larger sepulchres held
thirteen bodies. The entrance to the sepulchres was guarded by a large stone or
by a door (Matt 27:66; Mark 15:46; John 11:38,39). This structure of the tombs
will explain some of the particulars connected with the burial of our Lord, how
the women coming early to the grave had been astonished in finding the
"very great stone" "rolled away from the door of the
sepulchre," and then, when they entered the outer cave, were affrighted to
see what seemed "a young man sitting on the right side, clothed in a long
white garment" (Mark 16:4,5). Similarly, it explains the events as they
are successively recorded in John 20:1-12, how Mary Magdalene, "when it
was yet dark," had come to the sepulchre, in every sense waiting for the
light, but even groping had felt that the stone was rolled away, and fled to
tell the disciples they had, as she thought, taken away the Lord out of the
sepulchre. If she knew of the sealing of that stone and of the Roman guard, she
must have felt as if the hatred of man would not deprive their love even of the
sacred body of their Lord. And yet, through it all, the hearts of the disciples
must have treasured hopes, which they scarce dared confess to themselves. For
those other two disciples, witnesses of all His deeds on earth, companions of
His shame in Caiaphas' palace, were also waiting for the daybreak--only at
home, not like her at the grave. And now "they both ran together."
But on that morning, so near the night of betrayal, "the other disciple
did outrun Peter." Grey light of early spring had broken the heavy curtain
of cloud and mist, and red and golden sunlight lay on the edge of the horizon.
The garden was still, and the morning air stirred the trees which in the dark
night had seemed to keep watch over the dead, as through the unguarded
entrance, by which lay "the very great stone" rolled away, John
passed, and "stooping down" into the inner cave "saw the linen
clothes lying." "Then cometh Simon Peter," not to wait in the
outer cave, but to go into the sepulchre, presently to be followed thither by
John. For that empty sepulchre was not a place to look into, but to go into and
believe. That morn had witnessed many wonders--wonders which made the Magdalene
long for yet greater--for the wonder of wonders, the Lord Himself. Nor was she
disappointed. He Who alone could answer her questions fully, and dry her tears,
spake first to her who loved so much.
Thus
also did our blessed Lord Himself fulfil most truly that on which the law and
Jewish tradition laid so great stress: to comfort the mourners in their
affliction (comp. James 1:27). Indeed, tradition has it, that there was in the
Temple a special gate by which mourners entered, that all who met them might
discharge this duty of love. There was a custom, which deserves general
imitation, that mourners were not to be tormented by talk, but that all should
observe silence till addressed by them. Afterwards, to obviate foolish remarks,
a formula was fixed, according to which, in the synagogue the leader of the
devotions, and in the house some one, began by asking, "Inquire for the
ground of mourning"; upon which one of those present--if possible, a
Rabbi--answered, "God is a just Judge," which meant, that He had
removed a near relative. Then, in the synagogue, a regular fixed formula of
comfort was spoken, while in the house kind expressions of consolation
followed.
The
Rabbis distinguish between the Onen
and the Avel--the sorrowing or
suffering one, and the bowed down, fading one, or mourner; the former
expression applying only to the day of the funeral, the latter to the period
which followed. It was held, that the law of God only prescribed mourning for
the first day, which was that of death and burial (Lev 22:4,6), while the other
and longer period of mourning that followed was enjoined by the elders. So long
as the dead body was actually in the house, it was forbidden to eat meat or
drink wine, to put on the phylacteries, or to engage in study. All necessary
food had to be prepared outside the house, and as, if possible, not to be eaten
in presence of the dead. The first duty was to rend the clothes, which might be
done in one or more of the inner garments, but not in the outer dress. The rent
is made standing, and in front; it is generally about a hand-breadth in length.
In the case of parents it is never closed up again; but in that of others it is
mended after the thirtieth day. Immediately after the body is carried out of
the house all chairs and couches are reversed, and the mourners sit (except on
the Sabbath, and on the Friday only for one hour) on the ground or on a low
stool. A three-fold distinction was here made. Deep mourning was to last for
seven days, of which the first three were those of "weeping." During
these seven days it was, among other things, forbidden to wash, to anoint
oneself, to put on shoes, to study, or to engage in any business. After that
followed a lighter mourning of thirty days. Children were to mourn for their
parents a whole year; and during eleven months (so as not to imply that they
required to remain a full year in purgatory) to say the "prayer for the
dead." The latter, however, does not
contain any intercession for the departed. The anniversary of the day of death
was also to be observed. An apostate from the Jewish faith was not to be
mourned; on the contrary, white dress was to be worn on the occasion of his
decease, and other demonstrations of joy to be made. It is well known under
what exceptional circumstances priests and the high-priest were allowed to
mourn for the dead (Lev 21:10,11). In the case of the high-priest it was
customary to say to him, "May we be thy expiation!" ("Let us
suffer what ought to have befallen thee";) to which he replied, "Be
ye blessed of Heaven" (Sanh. ii.
1). It is noted that this mode of address to the high-priest was intended to
indicate the greatness of their affection; and the learned Otho suggests (Lexic. Rabb,
p. 343), that this may have been in the mind of the apostle when he would have
wished himself Anathema for the sake
of his brethren (Rom 9:3). On the return from the burial, friends, or
neighbours prepared a meal for the mourners, consisting of bread, hard-boiled
eggs, and lentils--round and coarse fare; round like life, which is rolling on
unto death. This was brought in and served up in earthenware. On the other
hand, the mourners' friends partook of a funeral meal, at which no more than
ten cups were to be emptied--two before the meal, five at it, and three
afterwards (Jer. Ber. iii. 1). In
modern times the religious duty of attending to the dying, the dead, and
mourners, is performed by a special "holy brotherhood," as it is
called, which many of the most religious Jews join for the sake of the pious
work in which it engages them.
We add
the following, which may be of interest. It is expressly allowed (Jer. Ber. iii. 1), on Sabbaths and
feast-days to walk beyond the Sabbath limits, and to do all needful offices for
the dead. This throws considerable light on the evangelical account of the
offices rendered to the body of Jesus on the eve of the Passover. The chief
mourning rites, indeed, were intermitted on Sabbaths and feast-days; and one of
the most interesting, and perhaps the earliest Hebrew non-Biblical record--the Megillath Taanith, or roll of
fasts--mentions a number of other days on which mourning was prohibited, being
the anniversaries of joyous occasions. The Mishnah (Moed K. iii. 5-9) contains a number of regulations and limitations
of mourning observances on greater and lesser feasts, which we do not quote, as
possessing little interest save in Rabbinical casuistry. The loss of slaves was
not to be mourned.
But
what after death and in the judgment? And what of that which brought in, and
which gives such terrible meaning to death and the judgment--sin? It were idle, and could only be
painful here to detail the various and discordant sayings of the Rabbis, some
of which, at least, may admit of an allegorical interpretation. Only that which
may be of use to the New Testament student shall be briefly summarised. Both
the Talmud (Pes. 54 a; Ned. 39 b), and the Targum teach that
paradise and hell were created before this world. One quotation from the
Jerusalem Targum (on Gen 3:24) will not only sufficiently prove this, but show
the general current of Jewish teaching. Two thousand years, we read, before the
world was made, God created the Law and Gehenna, and the Garden of Eden. He
made the Garden of Eden for the righteous, that they might eat of the fruits
thereof, and delight themselves in them, because in this world they had kept
the commandments of the law. But for the wicked He prepared Gehenna, which is
like a sharp two-edged destroying sword. He put within it sparks of fire and
burning coals, to punish the wicked in the world to come, because they had not
observed the commandments of the law in this world. For the law is the tree of
life. Whosoever observeth it shall live and subsist as the tree of life. *
* Other Rabbinical sayings have it, that seven things existed
before the world--the law, repentance, paradise, hell, the throne of God, the
name of the Messiah, and the Temple. At the same time the reader will observe
that the quotation from the Targum given in the text attempts an allegorising,
and therefore rationalistic interpretation of the narrative in Genesis 3:24.
Paradise
and hell were supposed to be contiguous, only separated--it was said, perhaps
allegorically--by an handbreadth. But although we may here find some slight
resemblance to the localisation of the history of the rich man and Lazarus
(Luke 16:25,26), only those acquainted with the theological thinking of the
time can fully judge what infinite difference there is between the story in the
Gospel and the pictures drawn in contemporary literature. Witness here the 22nd
chapter of the book of Enoch, which, as so many other passages from
pseudo-epigraphic and Rabbinical writings, has been mangled and misquoted by
modern writers, for purposes hostile to Christianity. The Rabbis seem to have
believed in a multitude of heavens--most of them holding that there were seven, as there were also seven
departments in paradise, and as many in hell. The pre-existence of the souls of
all mankind before their actual appearance upon earth, and even the doctrine of
the migration of souls, seem also to have been held--both probably, however,
chiefly as speculative views, introduced from foreign, non-Judaean sources.
But all
these are preliminary and outside questions, which only indirectly touch the
great problems of the human soul concerning sin and salvation. And here we can,
in this place, only state that the deeper and stronger our conviction that the
language, surroundings, and whole atmosphere of the New Testament were those of
Palestine at the time when our Lord trod its soil, the more startling appears
the contrast between the doctrinal teaching of Christ and His apostles and that
of the Rabbis. In general, it may be said that the New Testament teaching
concerning original sin and its consequences finds no analogy in the Rabbinical
writings of that period. As to the mode of salvation, their doctrine may be
broadly summed up under the designation of work-righteousness.
In view
of this there is, strictly speaking, logical inconsistency in the earnestness
with which the Rabbis insist on universal and immediate repentance, and the
need of confession of sin, and of preparation for another world. For, a
paradise which might be entered by
all on their own merits, and which yet is to be sought by all through
repentance and similar means, or else can only be obtained after passing
through a kind of purgatory, constitutes no mean moral charge against the
religion of Rabbinism. Yet such inconsistencies may be hailed as bringing the
synagogue, in another direction, nearer to biblical truth. Indeed, we come
occasionally upon much that also appears, only in quite another setting, in the
New Testament. Thus the teaching of our Lord about the immortality of the
righteous was, of course, quite consonant with that of the Pharisees. In fact,
their contention also was, that the departed saints were in Scripture called
"living" (Ber. 18 a).
Similarly, it was their doctrine (Ber.
17 a, and in several other passages)--though not quite consistently held--as it
was that of our Lord (Matt 22:30), that "in the world to come there is
neither eating nor drinking, neither fruitfulness nor increase, neither trade
nor business, neither envy, hatred, nor strife; but the righteous sit with
their crowns on their heads, and feast themselves on the splendour of the
Shechinah, as it is written, 'They saw God, and did eat and drink'" (Exo
24:11). The following is so similar in form and yet so different in spirit to
the parable of the invited guests and him without the wedding garment (Matt
22:1-14), that we give it in full. "R. Jochanan, son of Saccai, propounded
a parable. A certain king prepared a banquet, to which he invited his servants,
without however having fixed the time for it. Those among them who were wise
adorned themselves, and sat down at the door of the king's palace, reasoning
thus: Can there be anything awanting in the palace of a king? But those of them
who were foolish went away to their work, saying: Is there ever a feast without
labour? Suddenly the king called his servants to the banquet. The wise appeared
adorned, but the foolish squalid. Then the king rejoiced over the wise, but was
very wroth with the foolish, and said: Those who have adorned themselves shall
sit down, eat, drink, and be merry; but those who have not adorned themselves
shall stand by and see it, as it is written in Isaiah 65:13." A somewhat
similar parable, but even more Jewish in its dogmatic cast, is the following:
"The matter (of the world to come) is like an earthly king who committed
to his servants the royal robes. They who were wise folded and laid them up in
the wardrobes, but they who were careless put them on, and did in them their
work. After some days the king asked back his robes. Those who were wise
restored them as they were, that is, still clean; those who were foolish also
restored them as they were, that is, soiled. Then the king rejoiced over the
wise, but was very wroth with the careless servants, and he said to the wise:
Lay up the robes in the treasury, and go home in peace. But to the careless he
commanded the robes to be given, that they might wash them, and that they
themselves should be cast into prison, as it is written of the bodies of the
just in Isaiah 57:2; 1 Samuel 25:29, but of the bodies of the unjust in Isaiah
48:22, 57:21 and in 1 Samuel 25:29." From the same tractate (Shab. 152 a), we may, in conclusion,
quote the following: "R. Eliezer said, Repent on the day before thou
diest. His disciples asked him: Can a man know the hour of his death? He
replied: Therefore let him repent to-day, lest haply he die on the
morrow."
Quotations
on these, and discussions on kindred subjects might lead us far beyond our
present scope. But the second of the parables above quoted will point the
direction of the final conclusions at which Rabbinism arrived. It is not, as in
the Gospel, pardon and peace, but labour with the "may be" of reward.
As for the "after death," paradise, hell, the resurrection, and the
judgment, voices are more discordant than ever, opinions more unscriptural, and
descriptions more repulsively fabulous. This is not the place farther to trace
the doctrinal views of the Rabbis, to attempt to arrange and to follow them up.
Work-righteousness and study of the law are the surest key to heaven. There is
a kind of purgation, if not of purgatory, after death. Some seem even to have
held the annihilation of the wicked. Taking the widest and most generous views
of the Rabbis, they may be thus summed up: All Israel have share in the world
to come; the pious among the Gentiles also have part in it. Only the perfectly
just enter at once into paradise; all the rest pass through a period of
purification and perfection, variously lasting, up to one year. But notorious
breakers of the law, and especially apostates from the Jewish faith, and
heretics, have no hope whatever, either here or hereafter! Such is the last
word which the synagogue has to say to mankind.
Not
thus are we taught by the Messiah, the King of the Jews. If we learn our loss,
we also learn that "The Son of Man has come to seek and to save that which
was lost." Our righteousness is that freely bestowed on us by Him
"Who was wounded for our transgressions and bruised for our
iniquities." "With His stripes we are healed." The law which we
obey is that which He has put within our hearts, by which we become temples of
the Holy Ghost. "The Dayspring from on high hath visited us" through
the tender mercy of our God. The Gospel hath brought life and immortality to
light, for we know Whom we have believed; and "perfect love casteth out
fear." Not even the problems of sickness, sorrow, suffering, and death are
unnoticed. "Weeping may endure for a night, but joy cometh in the morning."
The tears of earth's night hang as dewdrops on flower and tree, presently to
sparkle like diamonds in the morning sun. For, in that night of nights has
Christ mingled the sweat of human toil and sorrow with the precious blood of
His agony, and made it drop on earth as sweet balsam to heal its wounds, to
soothe its sorrows, and to take away its death.
Chapter 11
Jewish Views on Trade, Tradesmen, and Trades' Guilds
We read
in the Mishnah (Kidd. iv. 14) as follows: "Rabbi Meir said: Let a man
always teach his son a cleanly and a light trade; and let him pray to Him whose
are wealth and riches; for there is no trade which has not both poverty and
riches, and neither does poverty come from the trade nor yet riches, but
everything according to one's deserving (merit). Rabbi Simeon, the son of
Eleazer, said: Hast thou all thy life long seen a beast or a bird which has a
trade? Still they are nourished, and that without anxious care. And if they,
who are created only to serve me, shall not I expect to be nourished without
anxious care, who am created to serve my Maker? Only that if I have been evil
in my deeds, I forfeit my support. Abba Gurjan of Zadjan said, in name of Abba
Gurja: Let not a man bring up his son to be a donkey-driver, nor a
camel-driver, nor a barber, nor a sailor, nor a shepherd, nor a pedlar; for
their occupations are those of thieves. In his name, Rabbi Jehudah said:
Donkey-drivers are mostly wicked; camel-drivers mostly honest; sailors mostly
pious; the best among physicians is for Gehenna, and the most honest of
butchers a companion of Amalek. Rabbi Nehorai said: I let alone every trade of
this world, and teach my son nothing but the Thorah (the law of God); for a man
eats of the fruit of it in this world (as it were, lives upon earth on the
interest), while the capital remaineth for the world to come. But what is left
over (what remains) in every trade (or worldly employment) is not so. For, if a
man fall into ill-health, or come to old age or into trouble (chastisement),
and is no longer able to stick to his work, lo! he dies of hunger. But the
Thorah is not so, for it keeps a man from evil in youth, and in old age gives
him both a hereafter and the hopeful waiting for it. What does it say about
youth? 'They that wait upon the Lord shall renew strength.' And what about old
age? 'They shall still bring forth fruit in old age.' And this is what is said
of Abraham our father: 'And Abraham was old, and Jehovah blessed Abraham in all
things.' But we find that Abraham our father kept the whole Thorah--the whole,
even to that which had not yet been given--as it is said, 'Because that Abraham
obeyed My voice, and kept My charge, My commandments, My statutes, and My
laws.'"
If this
quotation has been long, it will in many respects prove instructive; for it not
only affords a favourable specimen of Mishnic teaching, but gives insight into
the principles, the reasoning, and the views of the Rabbis. At the outset, the
saying of Rabbi Simeon--which, however, we should remember, was spoken nearly a
century after the time when our Lord had been upon earth--reminds us of His own
words (Matt 6:26): "Behold the fowls of the air: for they sow not, neither
do they reap, nor gather into barns; yet your heavenly Father feedeth them. Are
ye not much better than they?" It would be a delightful thought, that our
Lord had thus availed Himself of the better thinking and higher feeling in
Israel; so to speak, polished the diamond and made it sparkle, as He held it up
in the light of the kingdom of God. For here also it holds true, that the
Saviour came not in any sense to "destroy," but to "establish
the law." All around the scene of His earthly ministry the atmosphere was
Jewish; and all that was pure, true, and good in the nation's life, teaching,
and sayings He made His own. On every page of the gospels we come upon what
seems to waken the echoes of Jewish voices; sayings which remind us of what we
have heard among the sages of Israel. And this is just what we should have
expected, and what gives no small confirmation of the trustworthiness of these
narratives as the record of what had really taken place. It is not a strange
scene upon which we are here introduced; nor among strange actors; nor are the
surroundings foreign. Throughout we have a life-picture of the period, in which
we recognise the speakers from the sketches of them drawn elsewhere, and whose
mode of speaking we know from contemporary literature. The gospels could not
have set aside, they could not even have left out, the Jewish element.
Otherwise they would not have been true to the period, nor to the people, nor
to the writers, nor yet to that law of growth and development which always
marks the progress of the kingdom of God. In one respect only all is different.
The gospels are most Jewish in form, but most anti-Jewish in spirit--the record
of the manifestation among Israel of the Son of God, the Saviour of the world,
as the "King of the Jews."
This
influence of the Jewish surroundings upon the circumstances of the gospel
history has a most important bearing. It helps us to realise what Jewish life
had been at the time of Christ, and to comprehend what might seem peculiarities
in the gospel narrative. Thus--to come to the subject of this chapter--we now
understand how so many of the disciples and followers of the Lord gained their
living by some craft; how in the same spirit the Master Himself condescended to
the trade of His adoptive father; and how the greatest of His apostles
throughout earned his bread by the labour of his hands, probably following,
like the Lord Jesus, the trade of his father. For it was a principle,
frequently expressed, if possible "not to forsake the trade of the
father"--most likely not merely from worldly considerations, but because
it might be learned in the house; perhaps even from considerations of respect
for parents. And what in this respect Paul practised, that he also preached.
Nowhere is the dignity of labour and the manly independence of honest work more
clearly set forth than in his Epistles. At Corinth, his first search seems to have
been for work (Acts 18:3); and through life he steadily forbore availing
himself of his right to be supported by the Church, deeming it his great
"reward" to "make the Gospel of Christ without charge" (1
Cor 9:18). Nay, to quote his impassioned language, he would far rather have
died of hard work than that any man should deprive him of this
"glorying." And so presently at Ephesus "these hands"
minister not only unto his own necessities, but also to them that were with
him; and that for the twofold reason of supporting the weak, and of following
the Master, however "afar off," and entering into this joy of His,
"It is more blessed to give than to receive" (Acts 20:34,35). Again,
so to speak, it does one's heart good when coming in contact with that Church which
seemed most in danger of dreamy contemplativeness, and of unpractical, of not
dangerous, speculations about the future, to hear what a manly, earnest tone
also prevailed there. Here is the preacher himself! Not a man-pleaser, but a
God-server; not a flatterer, nor covetous, nor yet seeking glory, nor courting
authority, like the Rabbis. What then? This is the sketch as drawn from life at
Thessalonica, so that each who had known him must have recognised it: most
loving, like a nursing mother, who cherisheth her own children, so in
tenderness willing to impart not only the Gospel of God, but his own life. Yet,
with it all, no mawkishness, no sentimentality; but all stern, genuine reality;
and the preacher himself is "labouring night and day," because he
would not be chargeable to any of them, while he preached unto them the gospel
of God (1 Thess 2:9). "Night and day," hard, unremitting,
uninteresting work, which some would have denounced or despised as secular! But
to Paul that wretched distinction, the invention of modern superficialism and
unreality, existed not. For to the spiritual nothing is secular, and to the
secular nothing is spiritual. Work night and day, and then as his rest, joy,
and reward, to preach in public and in private the unsearchable riches of
Christ, Who had redeemed him with His precious blood. And so his preaching,
although one of its main burdens seems to have been the second coming of the
Lord, was in no way calculated to make the hearers apocalyptic dreamers, who
discussed knotty points and visions of the future, while present duty lay
unheeded as beneath them, on a lower platform. There is a ring of honest
independence, of healthy, manly piety, of genuine, self-denying devotion to
Christ, and also of a practical life of holiness, in this admonition (1 Thess
4:11,12): "Make it your ambition to be quite, to do your own" (each
one for himself, not meddling with others' affairs), "and to work with
your hands, as we commanded you, that ye may walk decorously towards them
without, and have no need of any one" (be independent of all men). And,
very significantly, this plain, practical religion is placed in immediate
conjunction with the hope of the resurrection and of the coming again of our
Lord (vv 13-18). The same admonition, "to work, and eat their own
bread," comes once again, only in stronger language, in the Second Epistle
to the Thessalonians, reminding them in this of his own example, and of his
command when with them, "that, if any would not work, neither should he
eat"; at the same time sternly rebuking "some who are walking
disorderly, who are not at all busy, but are busybodies" (we have here
tried to reproduce the play on the words in the original).
Now, we
certainly do not pretend to find a parallel to St. Paul among even the best and
the noblest of the Rabbis. Yet Saul of Tarsus was a Jew, not merely trained at
the feet of the great Gamaliel, "that sun in Israel," but deeply
imbued with the Jewish spirit and lore; insomuch that long afterwards, when he
is writing of the deepest mysteries of Christianity, we catch again and again
expressions that remind us of some that occur in the earliest record of that
secret Jewish doctrine, which was only communicated to the most select of the
select sages. *
* We mean the book Jezirah. It is curious that this should have
never been noticed. The coincidences are not in substance, but in modes of
expression.
And
this same love of honest labour, the same spirit of manly independence, the
same horror of trafficking with the law, and using it either "as a crown
or as a spade," was certainly characteristic of the best Rabbis. Quite
different in this respect also--far asunder as were the aims of their
lives--were the feelings of Israel from those of the Gentiles around. The
philosophers of Greece and Rome denounced manual labour as something degrading;
indeed, as incompatible with the full exercise of the privileges of a citizen.
Those Romans who allowed themselves not only to be bribed in their votes, but
expected to be actually supported at the public expense, would not stoop to the
defilement of work. The Jews had another aim in life, another pride and
ambition. It is difficult to give an idea of the seeming contrasts united in
them. Most aristocratic and exclusive, contemptuous of mere popular cries, yet
at the same time most democratic and liberal; law-abiding, and with the
profoundest reverence for authority and rank, and yet with this prevailing
conviction at bottom, that all Israel were brethren, and as such stood on
precisely the same level, the eventual differences arising only from this, that
the mass failed to realise what Israel's real vocation was, and how it was to
be attained, viz., by theoretical and practical engagement with the law,
compared to which everything else was but secondary and unimportant.
But
this combination of study with honest manual labour--the one to support the
other--had not been always equally honoured in Israel. We distinguish here
three periods. The law of Moses evidently recognised the dignity of labour, and
this spirit of the Old Testament appeared in the best times of the Jewish
nation. The book of Proverbs, which contains so many sketches of what a happy,
holy home in Israel had been, is full of the praises of domestic industry. But
the Apocrypha, notably Ecclesiasticus (xxxviii. 24-31), strike a very different
key-note. Analysing one by one every trade, the contemptuous question is put,
how such "can get wisdom?" This "Wisdom of Jesus the Son of
Sirach" dates from about two centuries before the present era. It would
not have been possible at the time of Christ or afterwards, to have written in
such terms of "the carpenter and workmaster," of them "that cut
and grave seals," of "the smith," or "the potter"; nor
to have said of them: "They shall not be sought for in public counsel, nor
sit high in the congregation; they shall not sit on the judges' seat, nor
understand the sentence of judgment; they cannot declare justice and judgment;
and they shall not be found where parables are spoken" (Ecclus xxxviii. 33).
For, in point of fact, with few exceptions, all the leading Rabbinical
authorities were working at some trade, till at last it became quite an
affectation to engage in hard bodily labour, so that one Rabbi would carry his
own chair every day to college, while others would drag heavy rafters, or work
in some such fashion. Without cumbering these pages with names, it is worth
mentioning, perhaps as an extreme instance, that on one occasion a man was
actually summoned from his trade of stone-cutter to the high-priestly office.
To be sure, that was in revolutionary times. The high-priests under the
Herodian dynasty were of only too different a class, and their history
possesses a tragic interest, as bearing on the state and fate of the nation.
Still, the great Hillel was a wood-cutter, his rival Shammai a carpenter,; and
among the celebrated Rabbis of after times we find shoemakers, tailors,
carpenters, sandalmakers, smiths, potters, builders, etc.--in short, every
variety of trade. Nor were they ashamed of their manual labour. Thus it is
recorded of one of them, that he was in the habit of discoursing to his
students from the top of a cask of his own making, which he carried every day
to the academy.
We can
scarcely wonder at this, since it was a Rabbinical principle, that
"whoever does not teach his son a trade is as if he brought him up to be a
robber" (Kidd. 4.14). The Midrash gives the following curious paraphrase
of Ecclesiastes 9:9, "Behold, the life with the wife whom thou
lovest" (so literally in the Hebrew): Look out for a trade along with the
Divine study which thou lovest. "How highly does the Maker of the world
value trades," is another saying. Here are some more: "There is none
whose trade God does not adorn with beauty." "Though there were seven
years of famine, it will never come to the door of the tradesman."
"There is not a trade to which both poverty and riches are not joined; for
there is nothing more poor, and nothing more rich, than a trade." "No
trade shall ever disappear from the world. Happy he whom his teacher has
brought up to a good trade; alas for him who has been put into a bad one."
Perhaps these are comparatively later Rabbinical sayings. But let us turn to
the Mishnah itself, and especially to that tractate which professedly embodies
the wisdom and the sayings of the fathers (Aboth). Shemaajah, the teacher of
Hillel, has this cynical saying (Ab. i. 10)--perhaps the outcome of his
experience: "Love work, hate Rabbiship, and do not press on the notice of
those in power." The views of the great Hillel himself have been quoted in
a previous chapter. Rabbi Gamaliel, the son of Jehudah the Nasi, said (Ab. ii.
2): "Fair is the study of the law, if accompanied by worldly occupation:
to engage in them both is to keep away sin; while study which is not combined
with work must in the end be interrupted, and only brings sin with it."
Rabbi Eleazar, the son of Asarjah, says, among other things: "Where there
is no worldly support (literally, no meal, no flour), there is no study of the
law; and where there is no study of the law, worldly support is of no
value" (Ab. iii. 21). It is worth while to add what immediately follows in
the Mishnah. Its resemblance to the simile about the rock, and the building
upon it, as employed by our Lord (Matt 7:24; Luke 6:47), is so striking, that
we quote it in illustration of previous remarks on this subject. We read as
follows: "He whose knowledge exceeds his works, to whom is he like? He is
like a tree, whose branches are many and its roots few, and the wind cometh,
and uproots the tree and throws it upon its face, as it is said (Jer
17:6)...But he whose works exceed his knowledge, to whom is he like? To a tree
whose branches are few, but its roots many; and if even all the winds that are
in the world came and set upon such a tree, they would not move it from its
place, as it is written (Jer 17:8)." We have given this saying in its
earliest form. Even so, it should be remembered that it dates from after the
destruction of Jerusalem. It occurs in a still later form in the Babylon Talmud
(Sanh. 99 a). But what is most remarkable is, that it also appears in yet
another work, and in a form almost identical with that in the New Testament, so
far as the simile of the building is concerned. In this form it is attributed
to a Rabbi who is stigmatised as an apostate, and as the type of apostasy, and
who, as such, died under the ban. The inference seems to be, that if he did not
profess some form of Christianity, he had at least derived this saying from his
intercourse with Christians. *
* Elisha ben Abbuja, called Acher, "the other," on
account of his apostasy. The history of that Rabbi is altogether deeply
interesting. We can only put the question: Was he a Christian, or merely
tainted with Gnosticism? The latter seems to us the most probable. His errors
are traced by the Jews to his study of the Kabbalah.
But
irrespective of this, two things are plain on comparison of the saying in its
Rabbinical and in its Christian form. First, in the parable as employed by our
Lord, everything is referred to Him; and the essential difference ultimately
depends upon our relationship towards Him. The comparison here is not between
much study and little work, or little Talmudical knowledge and much work; but
between coming to Him and hearing these sayings of His, and then either doing
or else not doing them. Secondly, such an alternative is never presented by
Christianity as, on the one hand, much knowledge and few works, and on the
other, little knowledge and many works. But in Christianity the vital
difference lies between works and no works; between absolute life and absolute
death; all depending upon this, whether a man has digged down to the right
foundation, and built upon the rock which is Christ, or has tried to build up
the walls of his life without such foundation. Thus the very similarity of the
saying in its Rabbinical form brings out all the more clearly the essential
difference and contrariety in spirit existing between Rabbinism, even in its
purest form, and the teaching of our Lord.
The
question of the relation between the best teaching of the Jewish sages and some
of the sayings of our Lord is of such vital importance, that this digression
will not seem out of place. A few further quotations bearing on the dignity of
labour may be appropriate. The Talmud has a beautiful Haggadah, which tells
how, when Adam heard this sentence of his Maker: "Thorns also and thistles
shall it bring forth to thee," he burst into tears, "What!" he
exclaimed; "Lord of the world, am I then to eat out of the same manger
with the ass?" But when he heard these additional words: "In the
sweat of thy face shalt thou eat bread," his heart was comforted. For
herein lies (according to the Rabbis) the dignity of labour, that man is not
forced to, nor unconscious in, his work; but that while becoming the servant of
the soil, he wins from it the precious fruits of golden harvest. And so, albeit
labour may be hard, and the result doubtful, as when Israel stood by the shores
of the Red Sea, yet a miracle will cleave these waters also. And still the
dignity of labour is great in itself: it reflects honour; it nourisheth and
cherisheth him that engageth in it. For this reason also did the law punish
with fivefold restitution the theft of an ox, but only with fourfold that of a
sheep; because the former was that with which a man worked.
Assuredly
St. Paul spoke also as a Jew when he admonished the Ephesians (Eph 4:28):
"Let him that stole steal no more: but rather let him labour, working with
his hands the thing which is good, that he may have to give to him that
needeth." "Make a working day of the Sabbath: only be not dependent
upon people," was the Rabbinical saying (Pes. 112). "Skin dead
animals by the wayside," we read, "and take thy payment for it, but
do not say, I am a priest; I am a man of distinction, and work is objectionable
to me!" And to this day the common Jewish proverb has it: "Labour is
no cherpah (disgrace)"; or
again: "Melachah is berachah (Labour is blessing)."
With such views, we can understand how universal industrious pursuits were in
the days of our Lord. Although it is no doubt true, as the Rabbinical proverb
puts it, that every man thinks most of his own trade, yet public opinion
attached a very different value to different kinds of trade. Some were avoided
on account of the unpleasantnesses connected with them, such as those of
tanners, dyers, and miners. The Mishnah lays it down as a principle, that a man
should not teach his son a trade which necessitates constant intercourse with
the other sex (Kidd. iv. 14). Such would include, among others jewellers,
makers of handmills, perfumers, and weavers. The latter trade seems to have
exposed to as many troubles as if the weavers of those days had been obliged to
serve a modern fashionable lady. The saying was: "A weaver must be humble,
or his life will be shortened by excommunication"; that is, he must submit
to anything for a living. Or, as the common proverb put it (Ab. S. 26 a):
"If a weaver is not humble, his life is shortened by a year." This
other saying, of a similar kind, reminds us of the Scotch estimate of, or
rather disrespect for, weavers: "Even a weaver is master in his own
house." And this not only in his own opinion, but in that of his wife
also. For as the Rabbinical proverb has it: "Though a man were only a
comber of wool, his wife would call him up to the house-door, and sit down
beside him," so proud is she of him. Perhaps in the view of the Rabbis
there was a little of female self-consciousness in this regard for her
husband's credit, for they have it: "Though a man were only the size of an
ant, his wife would try to sit down among the big ones."
In
general, the following sound views are expressed in the Talmud (Ber. 17 a):
"The Rabbi of Jabne said: I am simply a being like my neighbour. He works
in the field, and I in the town. We both rise early to go to work; and there is
no cause for the one setting himself up above the other. Do not think that the
one does more than the other; for we have been taught that there is as much
merit in doing that which is little as that which is great, provided the state
of our hearts be right." And so a story is told, how one who dug cisterns
and made baths (for purification) accosted the great Rabbi Jochanan with the
words: "I am as great a man as thou"; since, in his own sphere, he
served the wants of the community quite as much as the most learned teacher in
Israel. In the same spirit another Rabbi admonished to strict
conscientiousness, since in a sense all work, however humble, was really work
for God. There can be no doubt that the Jewish tradesman who worked in such a
spirit would be alike happy and skilful.
It must
have been a great privilege to be engaged in any work connected with the
Temple. A large number of workmen were kept constantly employed there,
preparing what was necessary for the service. Perhaps it was only a piece of
Jerusalem jealousy of the Alexandrians which prompted such Rabbinical
traditions, as, that, when Alexandrians tried to compound the incense for the
Temple, the column of smoke did not ascend quite straight; when they repaired
the large mortar in which the incense was bruised, and again, the great cymbal
with which the signal for the commencement of the Temple music was given, in
each case their work had to be undone by Jerusalem workmen, in order to produce
a proper mixture, or to evoke the former sweet sounds. There can be no
question, however, notwithstanding Palestinian prejudices, that there were
excellent Jewish workmen in Alexandria; and plenty of them, too, as we know
from their arrangement in guilds in their great synagogue. Any poor workman had
only to apply to his guild, and he was supported till he found employment. The
guild of coppersmiths there had, as we are informed, for their device a
leathern apron; and when it members went abroad they used to carry with them a
bed which could be taken to pieces. At Jerusalem, where this guild was
organised under its Rabban, or chief, it possessed a synagogue and a
burying-place of its own. But the Palestinian workmen, though they kept by each
other, had no exclusive guilds; the principles of "free trade," so to
speak, prevailing among them. Bazaars and streets were named after them. The
workmen of Jerusalem were specially distinguished for their artistic skill. A
whole valley--that of the Tyropoeon--was occupied by dairies; hence its name,
"valley of cheesemongers." Even in Isaiah 7:3 we read of "the
field of the fullers," which lay "at the end of the conduit of the
upper pool in the highway" to Joppa. A whole set of sayings is expressly
designated in the Talmud as "the proverbs of the fullers."
From
their love of building and splendour the Herodian princes must have kept many
tradesmen in constant work. At the re-erection of the Temple no less than
eighteen thousand were so employed in various handicrafts, some of them
implying great artistic skill. Even before that, Herod the Great is said to
have employed a large number of the most experienced masters to teach the one
thousand priests who were to construct the Holy Place itself. For, in the
building of that part of the Temple no laymen were engaged. As we know, neither
hammer, axe, chisel, nor any tool of iron was used within the sacred precincts.
The reason of this is thus explained in the Mishnah, when describing how all
the stones for the altar were dug out of virgin-earth, no iron tool being
employed in their preparation: "Iron is created to cut short the life of
man; but the altar to prolong it. Hence it is not becoming to use that which
shortens for that which lengthens" (Midd. iii. 4). Those who know the
magnificence and splendour of that holy house will be best able to judge what
skill in workmanship its various parts must have required. An instance may be
interesting on account of its connection with the most solemn fact of New
Testament history. We read in the Mishnah (Shek. viii. 5): "Rabbi Simeon,
the son of Gamaliel, said, in the name of Rabbi Simeon, the son of the (former)
Sagan (assistant of the high-priest): The veil (of the Most Holy Place) was an
handbreadth thick, and woven of seventy-two twisted plaits; each plait
consisted of twenty-four threads" (according to the Talmud, six threads of
each of the four Temple-colours--white, scarlet, blue, and gold). "It was
forty cubits long, and twenty wide (sixty feet by thirty), and made of
eighty-two myriads" (the meaning of this in the Mishnah is not plain).
"Two of these veils were made every year, and it took three hundred
priests to immerse one" (before use). These statements must of course be
considered as dealing in "round numbers"; but they are most
interesting as helping us to realise, not only how the great veil of the Temple
was rent, when the Lord of that Temple died on the cross, but also how the
occurrence could have been effectually concealed from the mass of the people.
To turn
to quite another subject. It is curious to notice in how many respects times
and circumstances have really not changed. The old Jewish employers of labour
seem to have had similar trouble with their men to that of which so many in our
own times loudly complain. We have an emphatic warning to this effect, to
beware of eating fine bread and giving black bread to one's workmen or
servants; not to sleep on feathers and give them straw pallets, more especially
if they were co-religionists, for, as it is added, he who gets a Hebrew slave
gets his master! Possibly something of this kind was on the mind of St. Paul
when he wrote this most needful precept (1 Tim 6:1,2): "Let as many
servants as are under the yoke count their own masters worthy of all honour,
that the name of God and His doctrine be not blasphemed. And they that have
believing masters, let them not despise them, because they are brethren; but
rather do them service, because they are believing and beloved, partakers of
the benefit." But really there is nothing "new under the sun!"
Something like the provisions of a mutual assurance appear in the associations
of muleteers and sailors, which undertook to replace a beast or a ship that had
been lost without negligence on the part of the owner. Nay, we can even trace
the spirit of trade-unionism in the express permission of the Talmud (Bab. B.
9) to tradesmen to combine to work only one or two days in the week, so as to
give sufficient employment to every workman in a place. We close with another
quotation in the same direction, which will also serve to illustrate the
peculiar mode of Rabbinical comment on the words of Scripture: "'He doeth
no evil to his neighbour-'-this refers to one tradesman not interfering with
the trade of another!"
Chapter 12
Commerce
The
remarkable change which we have noticed in the views of Jewish authorities,
from contempt to almost affectation of manual labour, could certainly not have
been arbitrary. But as we fail to discover here any religious motive, we can
only account for it on the score of altered political and social circumstances.
So long as the people were, at least nominally, independent, and in possession
of their own land, constant engagement in a trade would probably mark an
inferior social stage, and imply either voluntary or necessary preoccupation
with the things of this world that perish with the using. It was otherwise when
Judaea was in the hands of strangers. Then honest labour afforded the means,
and the only means, of manly independence. To engage in it, just sufficient to
secure this result, to "stand in need of no one"; to be able to hold
up one's head before friend and foe; to make unto God moral sacrifice of
natural inclination, strength and time, so as to be able freely and independently
to devote oneself to the study of the Divine law, was a noble resolve. And it
brought its own reward. If, on the one hand, the alternation of physical and
mental labour was felt to be healthy, on the other--and this had been the main
object in view--there never were men more fearlessly outspoken, more
unconcerned as to mere personality or as to consequences, more independent in
thought and word than these Rabbis. We can understand the withering scorn of
St. Jude (Jude 16) towards those "having men's persons in
admiration," literally, "admiring faces"--an expression by which
the LXX translate the "respect" or "regard," or
"acceptance" of persons (the nasa
panim) mentioned in Leviticus 19:15; Deuteronomy 10:17; Job 13:10; Proverbs
18:5, and many other passages. In this respect also, as so often, St. Paul
spoke as a true Jew when he wrote (Gal 2:6): "But of these who seemed to
be somewhat, whatsoever they were, it maketh no matter to me: the face of man
God accepteth not."
The
Mishnah, indeed, does not in so many words inform us how the change in public
feeling, to which we have referred, was brought about. But there are plenty of
hints to guide us in certain short caustic sentences which would be
inexplicable, unless read in the light of the history of that time. Thus, as
stated in the previous chapter, Shemaajah admonished: "Love work, hate
Rabbiship, and do not press on the notice of those in power." Similarly,
Avtaljon warned the sages to be cautious in their words, for fear of incurring
banishment for themselves and their followers (Ab. i. 10,11). And Rabbi
Gamaliel II had it (ii. 3): "Be cautious with the powers that be, for they
only seek intercourse with a person for their own advantage. They are as if
they loved you, when it serves for their profit, but in the hour of his need
they do not stand by a man." In the same category of sayings for the times
we may rank this of Rabbi Matithja: "Meet every one with a salutation of
peace, and prefer to be the tail of lions, but be not the head to foxes." It
is needless to multiply similar quotations, all expressive of an earnest desire
for honourable independence through personal exertion.
Quite
different form those as to trades were the Rabbinical views about commerce, as
we shall immediately show. In fact, the general adoption of business, which has
so often been made the subject of jeer against Israel, marks yet another social
state, and a terrible social necessity. When Israel was scattered by units,
hundreds, or even thousands, but still a miserable, vanquished, homeless, weak
minority among the nations of the earth--avoided, down-trodden, and at the
mercy of popular passion--no other course was open to them than to follow
commerce. Even if Jewish talent could have identified itself with the pursuits
of the Gentiles, would public life have been open to them--we shall not say, on
equal, but, on any terms? Or, to descend a step lower--except in those crafts
which might be peculiarly theirs, could Jewish tradesmen have competed with
those around? Would they even have been allowed to enter the lists? Moreover,
it was necessary for their self-defence--almost for their existence--that they
should gain influence. And in their circumstances this could only be obtained
by the possession of wealth, and the sole road to this was commerce.
There
can be no question that, according to the Divine purpose, Israel was not
intended to be a commercial people. The many restrictions to the intercourse
between Jews and Gentiles, which the Mosaic law everywhere presents, would
alone have sufficed to prevent it. Then there was the express enactment against
taking interest upon loans (Lev 25:36,37), which must have rendered commercial
transactions impossible, even though it was relaxed in reference to those who
lived outside the boundaries of Palestine (Deu 23:20). Again, the law of the
Sabbatic and of the Jubilee year would have brought all extended commerce to a
standstill. Nor was the land at all suited for the requirements of trade. True,
it possessed ample seaboard, whatever the natural capabilities of its harbours
may have been. But the whole of that coast, with the harbours of Joppa, Jamneh,
Ascalon, Gaza, and Acco or Ptolemais, remained, with short intervals, in the
possession of the Philistines and Phoenicians. Even when Herod the Great built
the noble harbour of Caesarea, it was almost exclusively used by foreigners
(Josephus, Jew. War, 409-413). And the whole history of Israel in Palestine
points to the same inference. Only on one occasion, during the reign of Solomon,
do we find anything like attempts to engage in mercantile pursuits on a large
scale. The reference to the "king's merchants" (1 Kings 10:28,29; 2
Chron 1:16), who imported horses and linen yarn, has been regarded as
indicating the existence of a sort of royal trading company, or of a royal
monopoly. A still more curious inference would almost lead us to describe
Solomon as the first great "Protectionist." The expressions in 1
Kings 10:15 point to duties paid by retail and wholesale importers, the words,
literally rendered, indicating as a source of revenue that "from the
traders and from the traffick of the merchants"; both words in their
derivation pointing to foreign trade, and probably distinguishing them as
retail and wholesale. We may here remark that, besides these duties and the
tributes from "protected" kings (1 Kings 9:15), Solomon's income is
described (1 Kings 10:14) as having amounted, at any rate, in one year, to the
enormous sum of between two and three million sterling! Part of this may have
been derived from the king's foreign trade. For we know (1 Kings 9:26, etc.; 2
Chron 8:17, etc.) that King Solomon built a navy at Ezion-geber, on the Red
Sea, which port David had taken. This navy traded to Ophir, in company with the
Phoenicians. But as this tendency of King Solomon's policy was in opposition to
the Divine purpose, so it was not lasting. The later attempt of King
Jehoshaphat to revive the foreign trade signally failed; "for the ships
were broken at Ezion-geber" (1 Kings 22:48; 2 Chron 20:36,37), and soon
afterwards the port of Ezion-geber passed once more into the hands of Edom (2
Kings 8:20).
With
this closes the Biblical history of Jewish commerce in Palestine, in the strict
sense of that term. But our reference to what may be called the Scriptural
indications against the pursuit of commerce brings up a kindred subject, for
which, although confessedly a digression, we claim a hearing, on account of its
great importance. Those most superficially acquainted with modern theological
controversy are aware, that certain opponents of the Bible have specially
directed their attacks against the antiquity of the Pentateuch, although they
have not yet arranged among themselves what parts of the Pentateuch were
written by different authors, nor by how many, nor by whom, nor at what times,
nor when or by whom they were ultimately collected into one book. Now what we
contend for in this connection is, that the legislation of the Pentateuch
affords evidence of its composition before the people were settled in
Palestine. We arrive at this conclusion in the following manner. Supposing a
code of laws and institutions to be drawn up by a practical legislator--for
unquestionably they were in force in Israel--we maintain, that no human
lawgiver could have ordered matters for a nation in a settled state as we find
it done in the Pentateuch. The world has had many speculative constitutions of
society drawn up by philosophers and theorists, from Plato to Rousseau and
Owen. None of these would have suited, or even been possible in a settled state
of society. But no philosopher would ever have imagined or thought of such laws
as some of the provisions in the Pentateuch. To select only a few, almost at
random. Let the reader think of applying, for example, to England, such
provisions as that all males were to appear three times a year in the place
which the Lord would choose, or those connected with the Sabbatic and the
Jubilee years, or those regulating religious and charitable contributions, or
those concerning the corners of fields, or those prohibiting the taking of
interest or those connected with the Levitical cities. Then let any one
seriously ask himself, whether such institutions could have been for the first
time propounded or introduced by a legislator at the time of David, or
Hezekiah, or of Ezra? The more we think of the spirit and of the details of the
Mosaic legislation, the stronger grows our conviction, that such laws and
institutions could have been only introduced before the people actually settled
in the land. So far as we are aware, this line of argument has not before been
proposed; and yet it seems necessary for our opponents to meet this preliminary
and, as we think, insuperable difficulty of their theory, before we can be
asked to discuss their critical objections.
But to
return. Passing from Biblical, or, at least, from Old Testament to later times,
we find the old popular feeling in Palestine on the subject of commerce still
existing. For once Josephus here correctly expresses the views of his countrymen.
"As for ourselves," he writes (Ag. Apion, i, 60-68), "we neither
inhabit a maritime country, nor do we delight in merchandise, nor in such a
mixture with other men as arises from it; but the cities we dwell in are remote
from the sea, and having a fruitful country for our habitation, we take pains
in cultivating that only." Nor were the opinions of the Rabbis different.
We know in what low esteem pedlars were held by the Jewish authorities. But
even commerce was not much more highly regarded. It has been rightly said that,
"in the sixty-three tractates of which the Talmud is composed, scarcely a
word occurs in honour of commerce, but much to point out the dangers attendant
upon money-making." "Wisdom," says Rabbi Jochanan, in explanation
of Deuteronomy 30:12, "'is not in heaven'--that is, it is not found with
those who are proud; neither is it 'beyond the sea'--that is, it will not be
found among traders nor among merchants" (Er. 55 a). Still more to the
point are the provisions of the Jewish law as to those who lent money on
interest, or took usury. "The following," we read in Rosh Hash. 8. 8, "are unfit for
witness-bearing: he who plays with dice (a gambler); he who lends on usury;
they who train doves (either for betting purposes, or as decoys); they who
trade in seventh year's products, and slaves." Even more pungent is this,
almost reminding one of the Rabbinic gloss: "Of the calumniator God says,
'There is not room in the world for him and Me'"--"The usurer bites
off a piece from a man, for he takes from him that which he has not given
him" (Bab. Mez. 60 b). A few other kindred sayings may here find a place.
"Rabbi Meir saith: Be sparing (doing little) in business, but busy in the
Thorah" (Ab. iv. 2). Among the forty-eight qualifications for acquiring
the Thorah, "little business" is mentioned (vi. 6). Lastly, we have
this from Hillel, concluding with a very noble saying, worthy to be preserved
to all times and in all languages: "He who engages much in business cannot
become a sage; and in a place where there are no men, strive thou to be a
man."
It will
perhaps have been observed, that, with the changing circumstances of the
people, the views as to commerce also underwent a slow process of modification,
the main object now being to restrict such occupations, and especially to
regulate them in accordance with religion. Inspectorships of weights and
measures are of comparatively late date in our own country. The Rabbis in this,
as in so many other matters, were long before us. They appointed regular inspectors,
whose duty it was to go from market to market, and, more than that, to fix the
current market prices (Baba B. 88). The prices for produce were ultimately
determined by each community. Few merchants would submit to interference with
what is called the law of supply and demand. But the Talmudical laws against
buying up grain and withdrawing it from sale, especially at a time of scarcity,
are exceedingly strict. Similarly, it was prohibited artificially to raise
prices, especially of produce. Indeed, it was regarded as cheating to charge a
higher profit than sixteen per cent. In general, some would have it that in
Palestine no one should make profit out of the necessaries of life. Cheating
was declared to involve heavier punishment than a breach of some of the other
moral commandments. For the latter, it was argued, might be set right by
repentance. But he who cheated took in not merely one or several persons, but
every one; and how could that ever be set right? And all were admonished to
remember, that "God punisheth even where the eye of an earthly judge
cannot penetrate."
We have
spoken of a gradual modification of Rabbinical views with the changing
circumstances of the nation. This probably comes out most clearly in the advice
of the Talmud (Baba M. 42), to divide one's money into three parts--to lay out
one in the purchase of land, to invest the second in merchandise, and to keep
the third in hand as cash. But there was always this comfort, which Rab
enumerated among the blessings of the next world, that there was no commerce
there (Ber. 17 a). And so far as this world was concerned, the advice was to
engage in business, in order with the profit made to assist the sages in their
pursuits, just as Sebua, one of the three wealthy men of Jerusalem, had
assisted the great Hillel. From what has been said, it will be inferred that
the views expressed as to Palestinian, or even Babylonian Jews, did not apply
to those who were "dispersed abroad" among the various Gentile
nations. To them, as already shown, commerce would be a necessity, and, in
fact, the grand staple of their existence. If this may be said of all Jews of
the dispersion, it applies specially to that community which was the richest
and most influential among them--we mean the Jews of Alexandria.
Few
phases, even in the ever-changeful history of the Jewish people, are more
strange, more varied in interest, or more pathetic than those connected with
the Jews of Alexandria. The immigration of Jews into Egypt commenced even
before the Babylonish captivity. Naturally it received great increase from that
event, and afterwards from the murder of Gedaliah. But the real exodus
commenced under Alexander the Great. That monarch accorded to the Jews in
Alexandria the same rights as its Greek inhabitants enjoyed, and so raised them
to the rank of the privileged classes. Henceforth their numbers and their
influence grew under successive rulers. We find them commanding Egyptian
armies, largely influencing Egyptian thought and inquiry, and partially
leavening it by the translation of the Holy Scriptures into Greek. Of the
so-called Temple of Onias at Leontopolis, which rivalled that of Jerusalem, and
of the magnificence of the great synagogue at Alexandria, we cannot speak in
this place. There can be no doubt that, in the Providence of God, the location
of so many Jews in Alexandria, and the mental influence which they acquired,
were designed to have an important bearing on the later spread of the Gospel of
Christ among the Greek-speaking and Grecian-thinking educated world. In this,
the Greek translation of the Old Testament was also largely helpful. Indeed,
humanly speaking, it would have scarcely been possible without it. At the time
of Philo the number of Jews in Egypt amounted to no less than one million. In Alexandria
they occupied two out of the five quarters of the town, which were called after
the first five letters of the alphabet. They lived under rulers of their own,
almost in a state of complete independence. Theirs was the quarter Delta, along
the seashore. The supervision of navigation, both by sea and river, was wholly
entrusted to them. In fact, the large export trade, especially in grain--and
Egypt was the granary of the world--was entirely in their hands. The
provisioning of Italy and of the world was the business of the Jews. It is a
curious circumstance, as illustrating how little the history of the world
changes, that during the troubles at Rome the Jewish bankers of Alexandria were
able to obtain from their correspondents earlier and more trustworthy political
tidings than any one else. This enabled them to declare themselves in turn for
Caesar and for Octavius, and to secure the full political and financial results
flowing from such policy, just as the great Jewish banking houses at the
beginning of this century were similarly able to profit by earlier and more
trustworthy news of events than the general public could obtain.
But no
sketch of commerce among the early Jews, however brief, would be complete
without some further notice both of the nature of the trade carried on, and of
the legal regulations which guarded it. The business of the travelling hawker,
of course, was restricted to negotiating an exchange of the products of one
district for those of another, to buying and selling articles of home produce,
or introducing among those who affected fashion or luxury in country districts
specimens of the latest novelties from abroad. The foreign imports were, with
the exception of wood and metals, chiefly articles of luxury. Fish from Spain,
apples from Crete, cheese from Bithynia; lentils, beans, and gourds from Egypt
and Greece; plates from Babylon, wine from Italy, beer from Media, household
vessels from Sidon, baskets from Egypt, dresses from India, sandals from
Laodicea, shirts from Cilicia, veils from Arabia--such were some of the goods
imported. On the other hand, the exports from Palestine consisted of such
produce as wheat, oil, balsam, honey, figs, etc., the value of exports and
imports being nearly equal, and the balance, if any, in favour of Palestine.
Then,
as to the laws regulating trade and commerce, they were so minute as almost to
remind us of the Saviour's strictures on Pharisaic punctiliousness. Several
Mishnic tractates are full of determinations on these points. "The dust of
the balances" is a strictly Jewish idea and phrase. So far did the law
interfere, as to order that a wholesale dealer must cleanse the measures he
used once every month, and a retail dealer twice a week; that all weights were
to be washed once a week, and the balances wiped every time they had been used.
By way of making assurance doubly sure, the seller had to give rather more than
an ounce in addition to every ten pounds, if the article consisted of fluids,
or half that if of solids (Baba B. v. 10, 11). Here are some of the principal
ordinances relating to trade. A bargain was not considered closed until both
parties had taken possession of their respective properties. But after one of
them had received the money, it was deemed dishonourable and sinful for the
other to draw back. In case of overcharge, or a larger than the lawful profit,
a purchaser had the right of returning the article, or claiming the balance in
money, provided he applied for it after an interval not longer than was needful
for showing the goods to another merchant or to a relative. Similarly, the
seller was also protected. Money-changers were allowed to charge a fixed
discount for light money, or to return it within a certain period, if below the
weight at which they had taken it. A merchant might not be pressed to name the
lowest price, unless the questioner seriously intended to purchase; nor might
he be even reminded of a former overcharge to induce him to lower his prices.
Goods of different qualities might not be mixed, even though the articles added
were of superior value. For the protection of the public, agriculturists were
forbidden to sell in Palestine wine diluted with water, unless in places where
such was the known usage. Indeed, one of the Rabbis went so far as to blame
merchants who gave little presents to children by way of attracting the custom
of their parents. It is difficult to imagine what they would have said to the
modern practice of giving discount to servants. All agreed in reprobating as
deceit every attempt to give a better appearance to an article exposed for
sale. Purchases of corn could not be concluded till the general market-price
had been fixed.
But
beyond all this, every kind of speculation was regarded as akin to usury. With
the delicacy characteristic of Rabbinical law, creditors were expressly
prohibited from using anything belonging to a debtor without paying for it,
from sending him on an errand, or even accepting a present from one who had
solicited an advance. So punctilious were the Rabbis in avoiding the appearance
of usury, that a woman who borrowed a loaf from her neighbour was told to fix
its value at the time, lest a sudden rise in flour should make the loaf
returned worth more than that borrowed! If a house or a field were rented, a
somewhat higher charge might be made, if the money were not paid in advance,
but not in the case of a purchase. It was regarded as an improper kind of
speculation to promise a merchant one-half of the profit on the sales he
effected, or to advance him money and then allow him one-half of the profits on
his transactions. In either case, it was thought, a merchant would be exposed
to more temptation. By law he was only entitled to a commission and to
compensation for his time and trouble.
Equally
strict were the regulations affecting debtor and creditor. Advances were
legally secured by regular documents, drawn out at the expense of the debtor,
and attested by witnesses, about whose signature minute directions are given.
To prevent mistakes, the sum lent was marked at the top, as well as in the body
of the document. A person was not taken as security for another after the loan
was actually contracted. In reference to interest (which among the Romans was
calculated monthly), in regard to pledges, and in dealing with insolvent debtors,
the mildness of the Jewish law has never been equalled. It was lawful, under
certain restrictions, to take a pledge, and in the event of non-payment to sell
it: but wearing apparel, bedding, the ploughshare, and all articles required
for the preparation of food were excepted. Similarly, it was unlawful, under
any circumstances, to take a pledge from a widow, or to sell that which
belonged to her. These are only some of the provisions by which the interest of
all parties were not only guarded, but a higher religious tone sought to be
imparted to ordinary life. Those who are acquainted with the state of matters
among the nations around, and the cruel exactions of the Roman law, will best
appreciate the difference in this respect also between Israel and the Gentiles.
The more the Rabbinical code is studied, the higher will be our admiration of
its provisions, characterised as these are by wisdom, kindliness, and delicacy,
we venture to say, far beyond any modern legislation. Not only the history of the
past, the present privileges, and the hope connected with the promises, but the
family, social, and public life which he found among his brethren would attach
a Jew to his people. Only one thing was awanting--but that, alas! the "one
thing needful." For, in the language of St. Paul (Rom 10:2), "I bear
them record that they have a zeal of God, but not according to knowledge."
Chapter 13
Among the People, and with the Pharisees
It
would have been difficult to proceed far either in Galilee or in Judaea without
coming into contact with an altogether peculiar and striking individuality,
differing from all around, and which would at once arrest attention. This was
the Pharisee. Courted or feared, shunned or flattered, reverently looked up to
or laughed at, he was equally a power everywhere, both ecclesiastically and
politically, as belonging to the most influential, the most zealous, and the
most closely-connected religions fraternity, which in the pursuit of its
objects spared neither time nor trouble, feared no danger, and shrunk from no
consequences. Familiar as the name sounds to readers of the New Testament and
students of Jewish history, there is no subject on which more crude or
inaccurate notions prevail than that of Pharisaism, nor yet any which, rightly
understood, gives fuller insight into the state of Judaism at the time of our
Lord, or better illustrates His words and His deeds. Let us first view the
Pharisee as, himself seemingly unmoved, he moves about among the crowd, which
either respectfully gives way or curiously looks after him.
There
was probably no town or village inhabited by Jews which had not its Pharisees,
although they would, of course, gather in preference about Jerusalem with its
Temple, and what, perhaps would have been even dearer to the heart of a genuine
Pharisee--its four hundred and eighty synagogues, its Sanhedrims (great and
small), and its schools of study. There could be no difficulty in recognising
such an one. Walking behind him, the chances were, he would soon halt to say
his prescribed prayers. If the fixed time for them had come, he would stop
short in the middle of the road, perhaps say one section of them, move on,
again say another part, and so on, till, whatever else might be doubted, there
could be no question of the conspicuousness of his devotions in market-place or
corners of streets. There he would stand, as taught by the traditional law,
would draw his feet well together, compose his body and clothes, and bend so
low "that every vertebra in his back would stand out separate," or,
at least, till "the skin over his heart would fall into folds" (Ber.
28 b). The workman would drop his tools, the burden-bearer his load; if a man
had already one foot in the stirrup, he would withdraw it. The hour had come,
and nothing could be suffered to interrupt or disturb him. The very salutation
of a king, it was said, must remain unreturned; nay, the twisting of a serpent
around one's heel must remain unheeded. Nor was it merely the prescribed daily
seasons of prayer which so claimed his devotions. On entering a village, and
again on leaving it, he must say one or two benedictions; the same in passing
through a fortress, in encountering any danger, in meeting with anything new,
strange, beautiful, or unexpected. And the longer he prayed the better. In the
view of the Rabbis this had a twofold advantage; for "much prayer is sure
to be heard," and "prolix prayer prolongeth life." At the same
time, as each prayer expressed, and closed with a benediction of the Divine
Name, there would be special religious merit attaching to mere number, and a
hundred "benedictions" said in one day was a kind of measure of great
piety.
But on
meeting a Pharisee face to face his identity could still less be doubted. His
self-satisfied, or else mock-modest or ostentatiously meek bearing would betray
him, even irrespective of his superciliousness towards others, his avoidance of
every touch of persons or things which he held unclean, and his extravagant
religious displays. We are, of course, speaking of the class, or, rather, the
party, as such, and of its tendencies, and not of all the individuals who composed it. Besides, there were, as we
shall by-and-by see, various degrees among them, from the humblest Pharisee,
who was simply a member of the fraternity, only initiated in its lowest degree,
or perhaps even a novice, to the most advanced chasid, or "pietist." The latter would, for example,
bring every day a trespass-offering, in case he had committed some offence of
which he was doubtful. How far the punctiliousness of that class, in observing
the laws of Levitical purity, would go, may be gathered from a Rabbi, who would
not allow his son to remain in the room while he was in the hands of the
surgeon, lest he might be defiled by contact with the amputated limb, which, of
course, was thenceforth dead. Another chasid
went so far in his zeal for Sabbath observance, that he would not build up
again his house because he had thought about it on the Sabbath; and it was even
declared by some improper to intrust a letter to a Gentile, lest he should
deliver it on the holy day! These are real, but by no means extreme cases. For,
a Rabbi, contemporary with the apostles, was actually obliged to denounce, as
incompatible with the continuance of society, the vagaries of the so-called
"Chasid Shoteh," or silly pietist. What was meant by these will
appear from such instances as the refusal to save a woman from drowning for
fear of touching a female, or waiting to put off the phylacteries before
stretching out a hand to rescue a child from the water!
Readers
of the New Testament will remember that the very dress of the Pharisees
differed from that of others. Simple as the garb of Orientals is, it must not
be thought that, in those days, wealth, rank, and luxury were not recognisable
quite as much, if not more, than among ourselves. No doubt the polished
Grecian, the courtly Herodian, the wealthy Sadducee, as well as many of the
lady patronesses of the Pharisees (Josephus, Ant. xvii, 32-45), would have been
easily recognised. At any rate, Jewish writings give us such descriptions of
their toilette, that we can almost transport ourselves among the fashionable
society of Tiberias, Caesarea, Jerusalem, or that of "the dispersed,"
who were residents of Alexandria or of the wealthy towns of Babylonia.
Altogether,
it seems, eighteen garments were supposed to complete an elegant toilette. The
material, the colour, and the cut distinguished the wearer. While the poor used
the upper garment for a covering at night, the fashionable wore the finest
white, embroidered, or even purple garments, with curiously-wrought silk
girdles. It was around this upper garment that "the borders" were
worn which the Pharisees "enlarged" (Matt 23:5). Of these we shall
speak presently. Meantime we continue our description. The inner garment went
down to the heels. The head-dress consisted of a pointed cap, or kind of
turban, of more or less exquisite material, and curiously wound, the ends often
hanging gracefully behind. Gloves were generally used only for protection. As
for ladies, besides differences in dress, the early charge of Isaiah (3:16-24)
against the daughters of Jerusalem might have been repeated with tenfold
emphasis in New Testament times. We read of three kinds of veils. The Arabian
hung down from the head, leaving the wearer free to see all around; the
veil-dress was a kind of mantilla, thrown gracefully about the whole person,
and covering the head; while the Egyptian resembled the veil of modern
Orientals, covering breast, neck, chin, and face, and leaving only the eyes
free. The girdle, which was fastened lower than by men, was often of very
costly fabric, and studded with precious stones. Sandals consisted merely of
soles strapped to the feet; but ladies wore also costly slippers, sometimes
embroidered, or adorned with gems, and so arranged that the pressure of the
foot emitted a delicate perfume. It is well known that scents and
"ointments" were greatly in vogue, and often most expensive (Matt
26:7). The latter were prepared of oil and of home or foreign perfumes, the
dearest being kept in costly alabaster boxes. The trade of perfumer was,
however, looked down upon, not only among the Jews, but even among heathen
nations. But in general society anointing was combined with washing, as tending
to comfort and refreshment. The hair, the beard, the forehead, and the face,
even garlands worn at feasts, were anointed. But luxury went much farther than
all this. Some ladies used cosmetics, painting their cheeks and blackening
their eyebrows with a mixture of antimony, zinc, and oil. The hair, which was
considered a chief point of beauty, was the object of special care. Young
people wore it long; but in men this would have been regarded as a token of
effeminacy (1 Cor 11:14). The beard was carefully trimmed, anointed, and
perfumed. Slaves were not allowed to wear beards. Peasant girls tied their hair
in a simple knot; but the fashionable Jewesses curled and plaited theirs,
adorning the tresses with gold ornaments and pearls. The favourite colour was a
kind of auburn, to produce which the hair was either dyed or sprinkled with
gold-dust. We read even of false hair (Shab. vi. 3), just as false teeth also
were worn in Judaea. Indeed, as in this respect also there is nothing new under
the sun, we are not astonished to find mention of hair-pins and elegant combs,
nor to read that some Jewish dandies had their hair regularly dressed! However,
the business of hairdresser was not regarded as very respectable, any more than
that of perfumer. *
* The learned Lightfoot has expressed a doubt whether the name
"Magdalene" is to be rendered "from Magdala" or "the
hairdresser." We have noted in a previous chapter, that the inhabitants of
Magdala engaged in such and similar business. But the Rabbinical passages to
which Lightfoot refers are not satisfactory, since they are evidently dictated
by a special animus against Christ and Christianity.
As for
ornaments, gentlemen generally wore a seal, either on the ring-finger or
suspended round the neck. Some of them had also bracelets above the wrist
(commonly of the right arm), made of ivory, gold, or precious stones strung
together. Of course, the fashionable lady was similarly adorned, adding to the
bracelets finger-rings, ankle-rings, nose-rings, ear-rings, gorgeous head-dresses,
necklaces, chains, and what are nowadays called "charms." As it may
interest some, we shall add a few sentences of description. The ear-ring was
either plain, or had a drop, a pendant, or a little bell inserted. The
nose-ring, which the traditional law ordered to be put aside on the Sabbath,
hung gracefully over the upper lip, yet so as not to interfere with the salute
of the privileged friend. Two kinds of necklaces were worn--one close-fitting,
the other often consisting of precious stones or pearls, and hanging down over
the chest, often as low as the girdle. The fashionable lady would wear two or
three such chains, to which smelling-bottles and various ornaments, even
heathen "charms," were attached. Gold pendants descended from the head-ornament,
which sometimes rose like a tower, or was wreathed in graceful snake-like
coils. The anklets were generally so wrought as in walking to make a sound like
little bells. Sometimes the two ankle-rings were fastened together, which would
oblige the fair wearer to walk with small, mincing steps. If to all this we add
gold and diamond pins, and say that our very brief description is strictly
based upon contemporary notices, the reader will have some idea of the
appearance of fashionable society.
The
sketch just given will be of some practical use if it helps us more fully to
realise the contrast presented by the appearance of the Pharisee. Whether
sternly severe, blandly meek, or zealously earnest, he would carefully avoid
all contact with one who was not of the fraternity, or even occupied an
inferior degree in it, as we shall by-and-by show. He would also be
recognisable by his very garb. For, in the language of our Lord, the Pharisees
made "broad their phylacteries," and "enlarged the borders of
their garments." The latter observance, at least so far as concerned the
wearing of memorial fringes on the borders of the garments--not the conspicuous
enlargement of these borders--rested really on a Divine ordinance (Num 15:37;
Deu 22:12). In Scripture these fringes are prescribed to be of blue, the
symbolical colour of the covenant; but the Mishnah allows them also to be white
(Men. iv. 1). They are not unfrequently referred to in the New Testament (Matt
9:20, 14:36, 23:5; Mark 6:56; Luke 8:44). As already stated, they were worn on
the border of the outer garment--no doubt by every pious Israelite. Later
Jewish mysticism found in this fringed border deep references to the manner in
which the Shechinah enwrapped itself
in creation, and called the attention of each Israelite to the fact that, if in
Numbers 15:39 we read (in the Hebrew), "Ye shall look upon him" [not
"it," as in our Authorised Version] "and remember," this change
of gender (for the Hebrew word for "fringes" is feminine)
indicated--"that, if thou doest so, it is as much as if thou sawest the
throne of the Glory, which is like unto blue." And thus believing, the
pious Jew would cover in prayer his head with this mysterious fringed garment;
in marked contrast to which St. Paul declares all such superstitious practices
as dishonouring (1 Cor 11:4). *
* The practice of modern Jews is somewhat different from that of
ancient times. Without entering into details, it is sufficient here to say that
they wear underneath their garments a small square, with fringes, called the
little tallith (from "talal," to overshadow or cover), or the
"arbah canphoth" (four "corners"); while during prayer they
wrap themselves in the great tallith, or so-called prayer-cloak.
If the
practice of wearing borders with fringes had Scriptural authority, we are well
convinced that no such plea could be urged for the so-called
"phylacteries." The observance arose from a literal interpretation of
Exodus 13:9, to which even the later injunction in Deuteronomy 6:8 gives no
countenance. This appears even from its repetition in Deuteronomy 11:18, where
the spiritual meaning and purport of the direction is immediately indicated,
and from a comparison with kindred expressions, which evidently could not be
taken literally--such as Proverbs 3:3, 6:21, 7:3; Canticles 8:6; Isaiah 49:16.
The very term used by the Rabbis for phylacteries--"tephillin,"
prayer-fillets--is comparatively modern origin, in so far as it does not occur
in the Hebrew Old Testament. The Samaritans did not acknowledge them as of
Mosaic obligation, any more than do the Karaite Jews, and there is, what seems
to us, sufficient evidence, even from Rabbinical writings, that in the time of
Christ phylacteries were not universally worn, nor yet by the priests while
officiating in the Temple. Although the words of our Lord seem only expressly
to condemn the making broad of the phylacteries, for purposes of religious
ostentation, it is difficult to believe that He Himself had worn them. At any
rate, while any ordinary Israelite would only put them on at prayer or on
solemn occasions, the members of the Pharisaic confraternity wore them all day
long. The practice itself, and the views and ordinances connected with it, are
so characteristic of the party, that we shall add a few further particulars.
The
"tephillin" were worn on the left arm, towards the heart, and on the
forehead. They consisted--to describe them roughly--of capsules, containing, on
parchment (that for the forehead on four distinct parchments), these four
passages of Scripture: Exodus 13:1-10, 13:11-16; Deuteronomy 6:4-9 and
11:13-21. The capsules were fastened on by black leather straps, which were
wound round the arm and hand (seven times round the former, and three times
round the latter), or else fitted to the forehead in a prescribed and
mystically significant manner. The wearer of them could not be mistaken. But as
for their value and importance in the eyes of the Rabbis, it were impossible to
exaggerate it. They were reverenced as highly as the Scriptures, and, like
them, might be rescued from the flames on a Sabbath, although not worn, as
constituting "a burden!" It was said that Moses had received the law
of their observance from God on Mount Sinai; that the "tephillin"
were more sacred than the golden plate on the forehead of the high-priest,
since its inscription embodied only once the sacred name of Jehovah, while the
writing inside the "tephillin" contained it not less than
twenty-three times; that the command of wearing them equalled all other
commands put together, with many other similar extravagances. How far the
profanity of the Rabbis in this respect would go, appears from the
circumstance, that they supposed God Himself as wearing phylacteries (Ber. 6
a). The fact is deduced from Isaiah 62:8, where the "right hand" by
which Jehovah swears is supposed to refer to the law, according to the last
clause of Deuteronomy 33:2; while the expression "strength of His
arm" was applied to the "tephillin," since the term
"strength" appeared in Psalm 29:11 in connection with God's people,
and was in turn explained by a reference to Deuteronomy 28:10. For "the
strength" of God's People (Psa 29:11) is that which would cause all to
"be afraid" of Israel (Deu 28:10); and this latter would be due to
their seeing that Israel was
"called by the name of Jehovah," this ocular demonstration being
afforded through the "tephillin." Such was the evidence which
traditionalism offered for such a monstrous proposition.
The
above may serve as a specimen alike of Rabbinical exegesis and theological inferences.
It will also help us to understand, how in such a system inconvenient
objections, arising from the plain meaning of Scripture, would be summarily set
aside by exalting the interpretations of men above the teaching of the Bible.
This brings us straight to the charge of our Lord against the Pharisees (Mark
7:13), that they made "the Word of God of none effect" through their
"traditions." The fact, terrible as it is, nowhere, perhaps, comes
out more strongly than in connection with these very "tephillin." We
read in the Mishnah (Sanh. xi. 3), literally, as follows: "It is more
punishable to act against the words of the Scribes than against those of
Scripture. If a man were to say, 'There is no such thing as
"tephillin,"' in order thereby to act contrary to the words of
Scripture, he is not to be treated as a rebel. But if he should say, 'There are
five divisions in the prayer-fillets' (instead of four in those for the
forehead, as the Rabbis taught), in order to add to the words of the Scribes,
he is guilty." Assuredly, a more signal instance could scarcely be found
of "teaching for doctrines the commandments of men," and of, even on
their own showing, "laying aside the commandment of God," in order to
"hold the tradition of men" (Mark 7:7,8).
Before
passing from this subject, it may be convenient to explain the meaning of the
Greek term "phylacteries" for these "tephillin," and to
illustrate its aptness. It is now almost generally admitted, that the real
meaning of phylacteries is equivalent to amulets or charms. And as such the
Rabbinists really regarded and treated them, however much they might otherwise
have disclaimed all connection with heathen views. In this connection we are
not going to enter into the unsavoury subject of their heathen superstitions,
such as where to find, how to detect, and by what means to get rid of evil
spirits, or how to conjure up demons--as these are indicated in the Talmud.
Considering the state of civilisation at the time, and the general prevalence
of superstition, we should perhaps have scarcely wondered at all this, had it
not been for the claims which the Rabbis set up to Divine authority, and the
terrible contrast exhibited between their teaching and that--we will not say of
the New, but--of the Old Testament. In reference to the
"phylacteries," even the language of Josephus (Ant. iv, 212-213)
savours of belief in their magical efficacy; although in this matter also he is
true to himself, showing us, at the same time, that certain proverbial views of
gratitude were already in vogue in his time. For, writing of the phylacteries,
which, he maintains, the Jews wore in remembrance of their past deliverance, he
observes, that this expression of their gratitude "served not only by way
of return for past, but also by way of invitation of future favours!" Many
instances of the magical ideas attaching to these "amulets" might be
quoted; but the following will suffice. It is said that, when a certain Rabbi
left the audience of some king, he had turned his back upon the monarch. Upon
this, the courtiers would have killed the Rabbi, but were deterred by seeing
that the straps of his "tephillin" shone like bands of fire about
him; thus verifying the promise in Deuteronomy 28:10 (Jer. Ber. v. 1). Indeed,
we have it expressly stated in an ancient Jewish Targum (that on Cant 8:3),
that the "tephillin" prevented all hostile demons from doing injury
to any Israelite.
What
has been said will in some measure prepare the reader for investigating the
history and influence of the Pharisees at the time of Christ. Let it be borne
in mind, that patriotism and religion equally combined to raise them in popular
esteem. What made Palestine a land separate and distinct from the heathen
nations around, among whom the ruling families would fain have merged them, was
that Jewish element which the Pharisees represented. Their very origin as a
party stretched back to the great national struggle which had freed the soil of
Palestine from Syrian domination. In turn, the Pharisees had deserted those
Maccabees whom formerly they had supported, and dared persecution and death,
when the descendants of the Maccabees declined into worldly pomp and Grecian
ways, and would combine the royal crown of David with the high-priest's mitre.
And now, whoever might fear Herod or his family, the Pharisees at least would
not compromise their principles. Again, were they not the representatives of
the Divine law--not only of that given to Israel on Mount Sinai, but also of
those more secret ordinances which were only verbally communicated to Moses, in
explanation of, and addition to the law? If they had made "a hedge"
around the law, it was only for the safety of Israel, and for their better
separation from all that was impure, as well as from the Gentiles. As for
themselves, they were bound by vows and obligations of the strictest kind.
Their dealings with the world outside their fraternity, their occupations,
their practices, their bearing, their very dress and appearance among that
motley crowd--either careless, gay, and Grecianising, or self-condemned by a
practice in sad discord with their Jewish profession and principles--would gain
for them the distinction of uppermost rooms at feasts, and chief seats in the
synagogues, and greetings in the markets, and to be called of men, Rabbi, Rabbi
("my great one, my great one"), in which their hearts so much
delighted.
In very
truth they mostly did represent, in some one or other degree of their order,
what of earnestness and religious zeal there was in the land. Their
name--probably in the first instance not chosen by themselves--had become to
some a byword, to others a party title. And sadly they had declined from their
original tendency--at least in most cases. They were not necessarily
"scribes," nor "lawyers," nor yet "teachers of the
law." Nor were they a sect, in the ordinary sense of the term. But they
were a fraternity, which consisted of various degrees, to which there was a
regular novitiate, and which was bound by special vows and obligations. This
fraternity was, so to speak, hereditary; so that St. Paul could in very truth
speak of himself as "a Pharisee of the Pharisees"--"a Pharisee
the son of a Pharisee." That their general principles became dominant, and
that they gave its distinctiveness alike to the teaching and the practices of
the Synagogue, is sufficiently know. But what tremendous influence they must
have wielded to attain this position will best appear from the single fact,
which has apparently been too much overlooked, of their almost incredibly small
numbers. According to Josephus (Ant. xvii, 32-45), the number of the fraternity
amounted at the time of Herod only to about six thousand. Yet this
inconsiderable minority could cast Judaism in its mould, and for such terrible
evil give its final direction to the nation! Surely the springs of such a
movement must have reached down to the very heart of Jewish religious life.
What these were, and how they affected the whole community, deserves and
requires not merely passing notice, but special and careful attention.
Chapter 14
The "Fraternity" of Pharisees
To
realise the state of religious society at the time of our Lord, the fact that
the Pharisees were a regular "order," and that there were many such
"fraternities," in great measure the outcome of the original
Pharisees, must always be kept in view. For the New Testament simply transports
us among contemporary scenes and actors, taking the then existent state of
things, so to speak, for granted. But the fact referred to explains many
seemingly strange circumstances, and casts fresh light upon all. Thus, if, to
choose an illustration, we should wonder how so early as the morning after the
long discussion in the Sanhedrim, which must have occupied a considerable part
of the day, "more than forty men" should have been found "banded
together" under an anathema, neither to eat nor to drink "till they
had killed Paul" (Acts 23:12,21); and, still more, how such "a
conspiracy," or rather "conjuration," which, in the nature of
it, would be kept a profound secret, should have become known to "Paul's
sister's son" (v 16), the circumstances of the case furnish a sufficient
explanation. The Pharisees were avowedly a "Chabura"--that is, a
fraternity or "guild"--and they, or some of their kindred fraternities,
would furnish the ready material for such a "band," to whom this
additional "vow" would be nothing new nor strange, and, murderous
though it sounded, only seem a farther carrying out of the principles of their
"order." Again, since the wife and all the children of a
"chaber," or member, were ipso facto members of the
"Chabura," and Paul's father had been a "Pharisee" (v 6),
Paul's sister also would by virtue of her birth belong to the fraternity, even
irrespective of the probability that, in accordance with the principles of the
party, she would have married into a Pharisaical family. Nor need we wonder
that the rage of the whole "order" against Paul should have gone to
an extreme, for which ordinary Jewish zeal would scarcely account. The day before,
the excitement of discussion in the Sanhedrim had engrossed their attention,
and in a measure diverted it from Paul. The apologetic remark then made (v 9),
"If a spirit or an angel hath spoken to him, let us not fight against
God," coming immediately after the notice (v 8) that the Sadducees said,
there was "neither angel nor spirit," may indicate, that the
Pharisees were quite as anxious for dogmatic victory over their opponents as to
throw the shield of the "fraternity" over one of its professed members.
But with the night other and cooler thoughts came. It might be well enough to
defend one of their order against the Sadducees, but it was intolerable to have
such a member in the fraternity. A grosser outrage on every principle and
vow--nay, on the very reason of being of the whole "Chabura"--could
scarcely be conceived than the conduct of St. Paul and the views which he
avowed. Even regarding him as a simple Israelite, the multitude which thronged
the Temple had, on the day before, been only restrained by the heathens from
executing the summary vengeance of "death by the rebel's beating."
How much truer was it as the deliberate conviction of the party, and not merely
the cry of an excited populace, "Away with such a fellow from the earth;
for it is not fit that he should live!" But while we thus understand the
conduct of the Pharisees, we need be under no apprehension as to the
consequences to those "more than forty men" of their rash vow. The
Jerusalem Talmud (Avod. Sar. 40 a) here furnishes the following curious
illustration, which almost reads like a commentary: "If a man makes a vow
to abstain from food, Woe to him if he eateth, and, Woe to him if he does not
eat! If he eateth, he sinneth against his vow; if he does not eat, he sins
against his life. What then must he do? Let him go before 'the sages,' and they
will absolve him from his vow." In connection with the whole of this
matter it is, to say the least, a very curious coincidence that, at the very
time when the party so acted against St. Paul, or immediately afterwards, three
new enactments should have been passed by Simeon, the son of Gamaliel (Paul's
teacher), which would exactly meet the case of St. Paul. The first of these
ordained, that in future the children of a "Chaber" should not be
necessarily such, but themselves require special and individual reception into
the "order"; the second, that the previous conduct of the candidate
should be considered before admitting him into the fraternity; while the third
enjoined, that any member who had left the "order," or become a publican,
should never afterwards be received back again.
Three
words of modern significance, with which of late we have all become too
familiar, will probably better help us to understand the whole state of matters
than more elaborate explanations. They are connected with that ecclesiastical
system which in so many respects seems the counterpart of Rabbinism.
Ultramontanism is a direction of religious thought; the Ultramontanes are a
party; and the Jesuits not only its fullest embodiment, but an
"order," which, originating in a revival of the spirit of the Papacy,
gave rise to the Ultramontanes as a party, and, in the wider diffusion of their
principles, to Ultramontanism as a tendency. Now, all this applies equally to
the Pharisees and to Pharisaism. To make the analogy complete, the order of the
Jesuits also consists of four degrees * --curiously enough, the exact number of
those in the fraternity of "the Pharisees!"
* When speaking of the four degrees in the order of Jesuits, we
refer to those which are professed. We are, of course, aware of the existence
of the so-called "professi trium votorum" of whom nothing definite is
really known by the outside world, and whom we may regard as "the secret
Jesuits," and of that of lay and clerical "coadjutors," whose
services and vows are merely temporary.
Like
that of the Jesuits, the order of the Pharisees originated in a period of great
religious reaction. They themselves delighted in tracing their history up to
the time of Ezra, and there may have been substantial, though not literal truth
in their claim. For we read in Ezra 6:21, 9:1, 10:11 and Nehemiah 9:2 of the
"Nivdalim," or those who had "separated" themselves
"from the filthiness of the heathen"; while in Nehemiah 10:29 we find,
that they entered into a "solemn league and covenant," with definite
vows and obligations. Now, it is quite true that the Aramaean word
"Perishuth" also means "separation," and that the
"Perushim," or Pharisees, of the Mishnah are, so far as the meaning
of the term is concerned, "the separated," or the
"Nivdalim" of their period. But although they could thus, not only
linguistically but historically, trace their origin to those who had
"separated" themselves at the time of Ezra and Nehemiah, they were
not their successors in spirit; and the difference between the designations
"Nivdalim" and "Perushim" marks also the widest possible
internal difference, albeit it may have been gradually brought about in the
course of historical development. All this will become immediately more plain.
At the
time of Ezra, as already noted, there was a great religious revival among those
who had returned to the land of their fathers. The profession which had of old
only characterised individuals in Israel (Psa 30:4, 31:23, 37:28) was now taken
up by the covenanted people as a whole: they became the "Chasidim" or
"pious" (rendered in the Authorised Version, "saints"). As
"Chasidim," they resolved to be "Nivdalim," or
"separated from all filthiness of heathenism" around. The one
represented, so to speak, the positive; the other, the negative element in
their religion. It is deeply interesting to notice, how the former Pharisee (or
"separated one"), Paul, had this in view in tracing the Christian
life as that of the true "chasid," and therefore
"Nivdal"--in opposition to the Pharisees of externalism--in such
passages as 2 Corinthians 6:14-7:1, closing with this admonition to
"cleanse ourselves from all filthiness * of the flesh and spirit,
perfecting holiness in the fear of God." And so St. Paul's former life and
thinking seem ever to have served him as the type of the spiritual realities of
his new state. **
* The Greek word for "filthiness" occurs in this passage
only, but the verb from which it is derived seems to have a ceremonial allusion
attaching to it in the three passages in which it is used: 1 Corinthians 8:7;
Revelation 3:4, 14:4.
** If St. Paul was originally a Pharisee, the accounts given by
the earliest tradition (Euseb. H. E. ii. 23), compared with that of Josephus
(Ant. xx, 197-203), would almost lead us to infer that St. James was a
"Chasid." All the more significant would then be the part he took in
removing the yoke of the law from the Gentile converts (Acts 15:13-21).
Two
points in Jewish history here claim our special attention, without attempting
to unravel the whole somewhat tangled web of events. The first is the period
immediately after Alexander the Great. It was one of the objects of the empire
which he founded to Grecianise the world; and that object was fully prosecuted
by his successors. Accordingly, we find a circle of Grecian cities creeping up
along the coast, from Anthedon and Gaza in the south, northwards to Tyre and
Seleucia, and eastwards to Damascus, Gadara, Pella, and Philadelphia, wholly
belting the land of Israel. Thence the movement advanced into the interior,
taking foothold in Galilee and Samaria, and gathering a party with increasing
influence and spreading numbers among the people. Now it was under these
circumstances, that the "Chasidim" as a party stood out to stem the
torrent, which threatened to overwhelm alike the religion and the nationality
of Israel. The actual contest soon came, and with it the second grand period in
the history of Judaism. Alexander the Great had died in July 323 BC. About a
century and a half later, the "Chasidim" had gathered around the
Maccabees for Israel's God and for Israel. But the zeal of the Maccabees soon
gave place to worldly ambition and projects. When these leaders united in their
person the high-priestly with the royal dignity, the party of the
"Chasidim" not only deserted them, but went into open opposition.
They called on them to resign the high-priesthood, and were ready to suffer
martyrdom, as many of them did, for their outspoken convictions. Thenceforth
the "Chasidim" of the early type disappear as a class. They had, as a
party, already given place to the Pharisees--the modern "Nivdalim";
and when we meet them again they are only a higher order or branch of the
Pharisees--"the pious" of old having, so to speak, become pietists."
Tradition (Men. 40) expressly distinguished "the early Chasidim"
(harishonim) from "the later" (acheronim). No doubt, those are some
of their principles, although tinged with later colouring, which are handed
down as the characteristics of the "chasid" in such sayings of the
Mishnah as: "What is mine is thine, and what is thine remains thine as
well" (P. Ab. V. 10); "Hard to make angry, but easy to
reconcile" (11); "Giving alms, and inducing others to do
likewise" (13); "Going to the house of learning, and at the same time
doing good works" (14).
The
earliest mention of the Pharisees occurs at the time of the Maccabees. As a
"fraternity" we meet them first under the rule of John Hyrcanus, the
fourth of the Maccabees from Mattathias (135-105 BC); although Josephus speaks
of them already two reigns earlier, at the time of Jonathan (Ant. xiii,
171-173). He may have done so by anticipation, or applying later terms to
earlier circumstances, since there can be little doubt that the Essenes, whom
he names at the same time, had not then any corporate existence. Without
questioning that, to use a modern term, "the direction" existed at
the time of Jonathan, * we can put our finger on a definite event with which
the origin of "the fraternity" of the Pharisees is connected. From
Jewish writings we learn, that at the time of Hyrcanus a commission was
appointed to inquire throughout the land, how the Divine law of religious
contributions was observed by the people. **
* In proof of this, it may be stated that before the formal
institution of the "order," R. Jose, the son of Joezer, declared all
foreign glass vessels, and indeed the whole soil of heathen lands,
"unclean," thus "separating" Israel from all possible
intercourse with Gentiles.
** It may be to the decrees then enacted by Hyrcanus that Josephus
refers (Ant. xiii, 293-298), when he speaks of their "abolition"
after Hyrcanus broke with the Pharisaical party.
The
result showed that, while the "therumah," (see The Temple)
or priestly "heave-offerings," was regularly given, neither the first
or Levitical tithe, nor yet the so-called "second" or "poor's
tithe," was paid, as the law enjoined. But such transgression involved
mortal sin, since it implied the personal use of what really belonged to the
Lord. Then it was that the following arrangements were made. All that the
"country people" ('am ha-aretz) sold was to be considered
"demai"--a word derived from the Greek for "people," and so
betraying the time of its introduction, but really implying that it was
"doubtful" whether or not it had been tithed. In such cases the buyer
had to regard the "therumah," and the "poor's tithe" as
still due on what he had purchased. On the other hand, the Pharisees formed a
"Chabura," or fraternity, of which each member--"Chaber,"
or "companion"--bound himself to pay these tithes before use or sale.
Each "Chaber" was regarded as "neeman," or
"credited"--his produce being freely bought and sold by the rest of
the "Chaberim." Of course, the burden of additional expense which
this involved to each non-"chaber" was very great, since he had to
pay "therumah" and tithe on all that he purchased or used, while the
Pharisee who bought from another Pharisee was free. One cannot help suspecting
that this, in connection with kindred enactments, which bore very hard upon the
mass of the people, while they left "the Pharisee" untouched, may
underlie the charge of our Lord (Matt 23:4): "They bind heavy burdens and
grievous to be borne, and lay them on men's shoulders; but they themselves will
not move them with one of their fingers."
But the
rigorous discharge of tithes was only one part of the obligations of a
"Chaber." The other part consisted in an equally rigorous submission
to all the laws of Levitical purity as then understood. Indeed, the varied
questions as to what was, or what made "clean," divided the one
"order" of Pharisees into members of various degrees. Four such
degrees, according to increasing strictness in "making clean," are
mentioned. It would take too long to explain this fourfold gradation in its
details. Suffice it, that, generally speaking, a member of the first degree was
called a "Chaber," or "Ben hacheneseth," "son of the
union"--an ordinary Pharisee; while the other three degrees were ranked
together under the generic name of "Teharoth" (purifications). These
latter were probably the "Chasidim" of the later period. The
"Chaber," or ordinary Pharisee, only bound himself to tithing and
avoidance of all Levitical uncleanness. The higher degrees, on the other hand,
took increasingly strict vows. Any one might enter "the order" if he
took, before three members, the solemn vow of observing the obligations of the
fraternity. A novitiate of a year (which was afterwards shortened) was,
however, necessary. The wife or widow of a "Chaber," and his
children, were regarded as members of the fraternity. Those who entered the
family of a "Pharisee" had also to seek admission into the
"order." The general obligations of a "Chaber" towards those
that were "without" the fraternity were as follows. He was neither to
buy from, nor to sell to him anything, either in a dry or fluid state; he was
neither to eat at his table (as he might thus partake of what had not been
tithed), nor to admit him to his table, unless he had put on the garments of "Chaber"
(as his own old ones might else have carried defilement); nor to go into any
burying-place; nor to give "therumah" or tithes to any priest who was
not a member of the fraternity; nor to do anything in presence of an "am ha-aretz,"
or non-"Chaber," which brought up points connected with the laws of
purification, etc. To these, other ordinances, partly of an ascetic character,
were added at a later period. But what is specially remarkable is that not only
was a novitiate required for the higher grades, similar to that on first
entering the order; but that, just as the garment of a non-"chaber"
defiled a "Chaber" of the first degree, that of the latter equally
defiled him of the second degree, and so on. *
* It is impossible here to reproduce the Talmudical passages in
evidence. But the two obligations of "making clean" and of
"tithing," together with the arrangement of the Pharisees into
various grades, are even referred to in the Mishnah (Chag. ii. 5, 6 and , and
Demai ii. 2,3).
To sum
up then: the fraternity of the Pharisees were bound by these two vows--that of
tithing and that in regard to purifications. As the most varied questions would
here arise in practice, which certainly were not answered in the law of Moses,
the "traditions," which were supposed to explain and supplement the
Divine law, became necessary. In point of fact, the Rabbis speak of them in
that sense, and describe them as "a hedge" around Israel and its law.
That these traditions should have been traced up to oral communications made to
Moses on Mount Sinai, and also deduced by ingenious methods from the letter of
Scripture, was only a further necessity of the case. The result was a system of
pure externalism, which often contravened the spirit of those very ordinances,
the letter of which was slavishly worshipped. To what arrant hypocrisy it often
gave rise, appears from Rabbinical writings almost as much as from the New
Testament. We can understand how those "blind guides" would often be
as great a trouble to their own party as to others. "The plague of
Pharisaism" was not an uncommon expression; and this religious sore is
ranked with "a silly pietist, a cunning sinner, and a woman
Pharisee," as constituting "the troubles of life" (Sot. iii. 4).
"Shall we stop to explain the opinions of Pharisees?" asks a Rabbi,
in supreme contempt for "the order" as such. "It is as a
tradition among the Pharisees," we read (Ab. de R. Nathan, 5), "to
torment themselves in this world, and yet they will not get anything in the
next." It was suggested by the Sadducees, that "the Pharisees would
by-and-by subject the globe of the sun itself to their purifications." On
the other hand, almost Epicurean sentences are quoted among their utterances,
such as, "Make haste, eat and drink, for the world in which we are is like
a wedding feast"; "If thou possessest anything, make good cheer of
it; for there is no pleasure underneath the sod, and death gives no
respite...Men are like the flowers of the field; some flourish, while others
fade away."
"Like
the flowers of the field!" What far other teaching of another Rabbi, Whom
these rejected with scorn, do the words recall! And when from their words we
turn to the kingdom which He came to found, we can quite understand the
essential antagonism of nature between the two. Assuredly, it has been a bold
stretch of assertion to connect in any way the origin or characteristics of
Christianity with the Rabbis. Yet, when we bring the picture of Pharisaism, as
drawn in Rabbinical writings, side by side with the sketch of it given by our
Lord, we are struck not only with the life-likeness, but with the selection of
the distinctive features of Pharisaism presented in His reproofs. Indeed, we
might almost index the history of Pharisaism by passages from the New
Testament. The "tithing of mint and anise," to the neglect of the
weightier matters of the law, and "the cleansing" of the
outside--these twofold obligations of the Pharisees, "hedged around,"
as they were, by a traditionalism which made void the spirit of the law, and
which manifested itself in gross hypocrisy and religious boasting--are they not
what we have just traced in the history of "the order?"
Chapter 15
Relation of the Pharisees
to the Sadducees and Essenes,
and to the Gospel of Christ
On
taking a retrospective view of Pharisaism, as we have described it, there is a
saying of our Lord which at first sight seems almost unaccountable. Yet it is
clear and emphatic. "All therefore whatsoever they bid you observe, that
observe and do" (Matt 23:3). But if the early disciples were not to break
at once and for ever with the Jewish community, such a direction was absolutely
needful. For, though the Pharisees were only "an order," Pharisaism,
like modern Ultramontanism, had not only become the leading direction of
theological thought, but its principles were solemnly proclaimed, and
universally acted upon--and the latter, even by their opponents the Sadducees.
A Sadducee in the Temple or on the seat of judgment would be obliged to act and
decide precisely like a Pharisee. Not that the party had not attempted to give
dominance to their peculiar views. But they were fairly vanquished, and it is
said that they themselves destroyed the book of Sadducean ordinances, which
they had at one time drawn up. And the Pharisees celebrated each dogmatic
victory by a feast! What is perhaps the oldest post-Biblical Hebrew book--the
"Megillath Taanith," or roll of fasts--is chiefly a Pharisaic
calendar of self-glorification, in which dogmatic victories are made days when
fasting, and sometimes even mourning, is prohibited. Whatever, therefore, the
dogmatic views of the Sadducees were, and however they might, where possible,
indulge personal bias, yet in office both parties acted as Pharisees. They were
well matched indeed. When a Sadducean high-priest, on the Feast of Tabernacles,
poured out the water on the ground instead of into the silver funnel of the
altar, Maccabean king though he was, he scarce escaped with his life, and ever
afterwards the shout resounded from all parts of the Temple, "Hold up thy
hand," as the priest yearly performed this part of the service. The
Sadducees held, that on the Day of Atonement the high-priest should light the
incense before he actually entered the Most Holy Place. As this was contrary to
the views of the Pharisees, they took care to bind him by an oath to observe
their ritual customs before allowing him to officiate at all. It was in vain
that the Sadducees argued, that the daily sacrifices should not be defrayed
from the public treasury, but from special contributions. They had to submit,
and besides to join in the kind of half-holiday which the jubilant majority
inscribed in their calendar to perpetuate the memory of the decision. The
Pharisees held, that the time between Easter and Pentecost should be counted
from the second day of the feast; the Sadducees insisted that it should
commence with the literal "Sabbath" after the festive day. But,
despite argument, the Sadducees had to join when the solemn procession went on
the afternoon of the feast to cut down the "first sheaf," and to
reckon Pentecost as did their opponents.
We have
here referred to only a few of the differences in ritual between the views of
the Sadducees and those of the Pharisees. The essential principle of them lay
in this, that the Sadducees would hold by the simple letter of the law--do
neither more nor less, whether the consequences were to make decisions more
severe or more easy. The same principle they applied in their juridical and
also in their doctrinal views. It would take us too much into detail to explain
the former. But the reader will understand how this literality would, as a
rule, make their judicial decisions (or rather such as they had proposed) far
more strict than those of the Pharisees, by a rigidly literal application of
the principle, "an eye for an eye; a tooth for a tooth." The same
holds true in regard to the laws of purification, and to those which regulated
inheritance. The doctrinal views of the Sadducees are sufficiently known from
the New Testament. It is quite true that, in opposition to Sadducean views as
to the non-existence of another world and the resurrection, the Pharisees
altered the former Temple-formula into "Blessed be God from world to
world" (from generation to generation; or, "world without end"),
to show that after the present there was another life of blessing and
punishment, of joy and sorrow. But the Talmud expressly states that the real
principle of the Sadducees was not, that there was no resurrection, but only
that it could not be proved from the Thorah, or Law. From this there was, of
course, but a short step to the entire denial of the doctrine; and no doubt it
was taken by the vast majority of the party. But here also it was again their
principle of strict literality, which underlay even the most extreme of their
errors.
This
principle was indeed absolutely necessary to their very existence. We have
traced the Pharisees not only to a definite period, but to a special event; and
we have been able perfectly to explain their name as "the separated."
Not that we presume they gave it to themselves, for no sect or party ever takes
a name; they all pretend to require no distinctive title, because they alone
genuinely and faithfully represent the truth itself. But when they were called
Pharisees, the "Chaberim," no doubt, took kindly to the popular
designation. It was to them--to use an illustration--what the name
"Puritans" was to a far different and opposite party in the Church.
But the name "Sadducee" is involved in quite as much obscurity as the
origin of the party. Let us try to cast some fresh light upon both--only
premising that the common derivations of their name, whether from the
high-priest Zadok, or from a Rabbi called Zadok, whose fundamental principle of
not seeking reward in religion they were thought to have misunderstood and
misapplied, or from the Hebrew word "zaddikim"--the righteous--are
all unsatisfactory, and yet may all contain elements of truth.
There
can be no question that the "sect" of the Sadducees originated in a
reaction against the Pharisees. If the latter added to the law their own
glosses, interpretations, and traditions, the Sadducee took his stand upon the
bare letter of the law. He would have none of their additions and
supererogations; he would not be righteous overmuch. Suffice it for him to have
to practise "zedakah," "righteousness." We can understand
how this shibboleth of theirs became, in the mouth of the people, the byname of
a party--some using it ironically, some approvingly. By-and-by the party no
doubt took as kindly to the name as the Pharisees did to theirs. Thus far,
then, we agree with those who derive the title of Sadducees from
"zaddikim." But why the grammatically-unaccountable change from
"zaddikim" to "zaddukim?" May it not be that the simple but
significant alteration of a letter had, after a not uncommon fashion,
originated with their opponents, as if they would have said: "You are
'zaddikim?' Nay, rather, 'zaddukim'" from the Aramaean word
"zadu" (wasting or desolation)--meaning, you are not upholders but
destroyers of righteousness? This origin of the name would in no way be
inconsistent with the later attempts of the party to trace up their history
either to the high-priest Zadok, or to one of the fathers of Jewish traditionalism,
whose motto they ostentatiously adopted. History records not a few similar
instances of attempts to trace up the origin of a religious party. Be this as
it may, we can understand how the adherents of Sadducean opinions belonged
chiefly to the rich, luxurious, and aristocratic party, including the wealthy
families of priests; while, according to the testimony of Josephus, which is
corroborated by the New Testament, the mass of the people, and especially the
women, venerated and supported the Pharisaical party. Thus the "order"
of the "Chaberim" gradually became a popular party, like the
Ultramontanes. Finally, as from the nature of it Pharisaism was dependent upon
traditional lore, it became not only the prevailing direction of Jewish
theological study, but the "Chaber" by-and-by merged into the Rabbi,
the "sage," or "disciple of the sages"; while the
non-"chaber," or "am ha-aretz," became the designation for
ignorance of traditional lore, and neglect of its ordinances. This was
specially the case when the dissolution of the Jewish commonwealth rendered the
obligations of the "fraternity" necessarily impossible. Under such
altered circumstances the old historical Pharisee would often be no small
plague to the leaders of the party, as is frequently the case with the original
adherents and sticklers of a sect in which the irresistible progress of time
has necessarily produced changes.
The
course of our investigations has shown, that neither Pharisees nor Sadducees
were a sect, in the sense of separating from Temple or Synagogue; and also that
the Jewish people as such were not divided between Pharisees and Sadducees. The
small number of professed Pharisees (six thousand) at the time of Herod, the
representations of the New Testament, and even the curious circumstance that
Philo never once mentions the name of Pharisee, confirm the result of our
historical inquiries, that the Pharisees were first an "order," then
gave the name to a party, and finally represented a direction of theological
thought. The New Testament speaks of no other than these two parties. But
Josephus and Philo also mention the "Essenes." It is beyond our
present scope either to describe their tenets and practices, or even to discuss
the complex question of the origin of their name. From the nature of it, the
party exercised no great influence, and was but short-lived. They seem to have
combined a kind of higher grade Pharisaism with devotional views, and even
practices, derived from Eastern mysticism, and more particularly from the
Medo-Persian religion. Of the former, the fact that the one object of all their
institutions was a higher purity, may here be regarded as sufficient evidence.
The latter is apparent from a careful study of their views, as these have been
preserved to us, and from their comparison with the Zoroastrian system. And of
the fact that "Palestine was surrounded by Persian influences," there
are abundant indications.
As a
sect the Essenes never attained a larger number than four thousand; and as they
lived apart from the rest, neither mingling in their society nor in their
worship, and--as a general rule--abstained from marriage, they soon became
extinct. Indeed, Rabbinical writings allude to quite a number of what may
probably be described as sectaries, all of them more or less distinctly belonging
to the mystical and ascetic branch of Pharisaism. We here name, first, the
"Vathikin," or "strong ones," who performed their prayers
with the first dawn; secondly, the "Toble Shachrith," or
"morning baptists," who immersed before morning prayer, so as to
utter the Divine Name only in a state of purity; thirdly, the "Kehala
Kadisha," or "holy congregation," who spent a third of the day
in prayer, a third in study, and a third in labour; fourthly, the
"Banaim," or "builders," who, besides aiming after highest
purity, occupied themselves with mystical studies about God and the world;
fifthly, the "Zenuim," or "secret pious," who besides kept
their views and writings secret; sixthly, the "Nekije hadaath,"
"men of a pure mind," who were really separatists from their
brethren; seventhly, the "Chashaim," or "mysterious ones";
and lastly, the "Assiim," "helpers" or "healers,"
who professed to possess the right pronunciation of the sacred Name of Jehovah,
with all that this implied.
If in
any of the towns of Judaea one had met the strange apparition of a man dressed
wholly in white, whose sandals and garments perhaps bore signs of age--for they
might not be put away till quite worn out--but who was scrupulously clean, this
man was an Essene. The passers would stop short and look after him with mingled
reverence and curiosity. For he was but rarely seen in town or village--the
community separating from the rest of the people, and inhabiting desert places,
specially the neighbourhood of the Dead Sea; and the character of the
"order" for asceticism and self-denial, as well as for purity, was
universally known. However strictly they observed the Sabbath, it was in their
own synagogues; and although they sent gifts to the altar, they attended not
the Temple nor offered sacrifices, partly because they regarded their
arrangements as not sufficiently Levitically clean, and partly because they
came to consider their own table an altar, and their common meals a sacrifice.
They formed an "order," bound by the strictest vows, taken under
terrible oaths, and subject to the most rigorous disciplines. The members
abstained from wine, meat, and oil, and most of them also from marriage. They
had community of goods; were bound to poverty, chastity, and obedience to their
superiors. Purity of morals was enjoined, especially in regard to speaking the
truth. To take an oath was prohibited, as also the keeping of slaves. The order
consisted of four grades; contact with one of a lower always defiling him of
the higher grade. The novitiate lasted two years, though at the end of the
first the candidate was taken into closer fellowship. The rule was in the hands
of "elders," who had the power of admission and expulsion--the latter
being almost equivalent to death by starvation, as the Essene had bound himself
by a terrible oath not to associate with others. Their day began with sunrise,
when they went to prayer. Before that, nothing secular might be spoken. After
prayer, they betook themselves to agricultural labour--for they were not
allowed to keep herds and flocks--or else to works of charity, specially the
healing of the sick. At eleven o'clock they bathed, changed their dress, and
then gathered for the common meal. A priest opened and closed it with prayer.
They sat according to age and dignity; the eldest engaging in serious
conversation, but in so quiet a tone as not to be heard outside. The young men
served. Each had bread and salt handed him, also another dish; the elders being
allowed the condiment of hyssop and the luxury of warm water. After the meal
they put off their clothes, and returned to work till the evening, when there
was another common meal, followed by mystical hymns and dances, to symbolise
the rapt, ecstatic state of mind.
It is
needless to follow the subject farther. Even what has been said--irrespective
of their separation from the world, their punctilious Sabbath-observance, and
views on purification; their opposition to sacrifices, and notably their
rejection of the doctrine of the resurrection--is surely sufficient to prove
that they had no connection with the origin of Christianity. Assertions of this
kind are equally astonishing to the calm historical student and painful to the
Christian. Yet there can be no doubt that among these mystical sects were
preserved views of the Divine Being, of the Messiah and His kingdom, and of
kindred doctrines, which afterwards appeared in the so-called "secret
tradition" of the Synagogue, and which, as derived from the study of the
prophetic writings, contain marvellous echoes of Christian truth. On this
point, however, we may not here enter.
Christ
and the Gospel among Pharisees, Sadducees, and Essenes! We can now realise the
scene, and understand the mutual relations. The existing communities, the
religious tendencies, the spirit of the age, assuredly offered no point of
attachment--only absolute and essential contrariety to the kingdom of heaven.
The "preparer of the way" could appeal to neither of them; his voice
only cried "in the wilderness." Far, far beyond the origin of
Pharisees, Sadducees, and Essenes, he had to point back to the original Paschal
consecration of Israel as that which was to be now exhibited in its reality:
"Behold the Lamb of God, which taketh away the sin of the world." If
the first great miracle of Christianity was the breaking down of the middle
wall of partition, the second--perhaps we should have rather put it first, to
realise the symbolism of the two miracles in Cana--was that it found nothing
analogous in the religious communities around, nothing sympathetic, absolutely
no stem on which to graft the new plant, but was literally "as a root out
of a dry ground," of which alike Pharisee, Sadducee, and Essene would say:
"He hath no form nor comeliness; and when we shall see Him, there is no beauty
that we should desire Him."
Chapter 16
Synagogues: Their Origin, Structure
and Outward Arrangements
It was
a beautiful saying of Rabbi Jochanan (Jer. Ber. v. 1), that he who prays in his
house surrounds and fortifies it, so to speak, with a wall of iron.
Nevertheless, it seems immediately contradicted by what follows. For it is
explained that this only holds good where a man is alone, but that where there
is a community prayer should be offered in the synagogue. We can readily
understand how, after the destruction of the Temple, and the cessation of its
symbolical worship, the excessive value attached to mere attendance at the
synagogue would rapidly grow in public estimation, till it exceeded all bounds
of moderation or reason. Thus, such Scriptural sayings as Isaiah 66:20, 55:6
and Psalm 82:1 were applied to it. The Babylon Talmud goes even farther. There
we are told (Ber. 6 a), that the prayer which a man addresses to God has only
its proper effect if offered in the synagogue; that if an individual, accustomed
to frequent every day the synagogue, misses it for once, God will demand an
account of him; that if the Eternal finds fewer than ten persons there
gathered, His anger is kindled, as it is written in Isaiah 50:2 (Ber. 6 b);
that if a person has a synagogue in his own town, and does not enter it for
prayer, he is to be called an evil neighbour, and provokes exile alike upon
himself and his children, as it is written in Jeremiah 12:4; while, on the
other hand, the practice of early resorting to the synagogue would account for
the longevity of people (Ber. 8 a). Putting aside these extravagances, there
cannot, however, be doubt that, long before the Talmudical period, the
institution of synagogues had spread, not only among the Palestinian, but among
the Jews of the dispersion, and that it was felt a growing necessity, alike
from internal and external causes.
Readers
of the New Testament know, that at the time of our Lord synagogues were dotted
all over the land; that in them "from of old" Moses had been read (Acts
15:21); that they were under the rule of certain authorities, who also
exercised discipline; that the services were definitely regulated, although
considerable liberty obtained, and that part of them consisted in reading the
prophets, which was generally followed by an "exhortation" (Acts
13:15) or an address (Luke 4:17). The word "synagogue" is, of course,
of Greek derivation, and means "gathering together"--for religious
purposes. The corresponding Rabbinical terms, "chenisah,"
"cheneseth," etc., "zibbur," "vaad," and
"kahal," may be generally characterised as equivalents. But it is
interesting to notice, that both the Old Testament and the Rabbis have shades
of distinction, well known in modern theological discussions. To begin with the
former. Two terms are used for Israel as a congregation: "edah" and
"kahal"; of which the former seems to refer to Israel chiefly in
their outward organisation as a congregation--what moderns would call the
visible Church--while "kahal" rather indicates their inner or spiritual
connection. Even the LXX seem to have seen this distinction. The word
"edah" occurs one hundred and thirty times, and is always rendered in
the LXX by "synagogue," never by "ecclesia" (church); while
"kahal" is translated in seventy places by "ecclesia," and
only in thirty-seven by "synagogue." Similarly, the Mishnah employs
the term "kahal" only to denote Israel as a whole; while the term
"zibbur," for example, is used alike for churches and for the
Church--that is, for individual congregations, and for Israel as a whole.
The
origin of the synagogue is lost in the obscurity of tradition. Of course, like
so many other institutions, it is traced by the Rabbis to the patriarchs. Thus,
both the Targum Jonathan and the Jerusalem Targum represent Jacob as an
attendant in the synagogue, and Rebekah as resorting thither for advice when
feeling within her the unnatural contest of her two sons. There can be no
occasion for seriously discussing such statements. For when in 2 Kings 22:8 we
read that "the book of the law" was discovered by Shaphan the scribe
in "the house of the Lord," this implies that during the reign of
King Josiah there could have been no synagogues in the land, since it was their
main object to secure the weekly reading, and of course the preservation, of
the books of Moses (Acts 15:21). Our Authorised Version, indeed, renders Psalm
74:8, "They have burned up all the synagogues of God in the land."
But there is good authority for questioning this translation; and, even if
admitted, it would not settle the question of the exact time when synagogues
originated. On the other hand, there is not a hint of synagogue-worship either
in the law or the prophets; and this of itself would be decisive, considering
the importance of the subject. Besides, it may be said that there was no room
for such meetings under the Old Testament dispensation. There the whole worship
was typical--the sacrificial services alike constituting the manner in which
Israel approached unto God, and being the way by which He communicated
blessings to His people. Gatherings for prayer and for fellowship with the
Father belong, so far as the Church as a whole is concerned, to the
dispensation of the Holy Spirit. It is quite in accordance with this general
principle, that when men filled with the Spirit of God were raised up from time
to time, those who longed for deeper knowledge and closer converse with the
Lord should have gathered around them on Sabbaths and new moons, as the pious
Shunammite resorted to Elisha (2 Kings 4:23), and as others were no doubt wont
to do, if within reach of "prophets" or their disciples. But quite a
different state of matter ensued during the Babylonish captivity. Deprived of
the Temple services, some kind of religious meetings would become an absolute
necessity, if the people were not to lapse into practical heathenism--a danger,
indeed, which, despite the admonitions of the prophets, and the prospect of
deliverance held out, was not quite avoided. For the preservation, also, of the
national bond which connected Israel, as well as for their continued religious
existence, the institution of synagogues seemed alike needful and desirable. In
point of fact, the attentive reader of the books of Ezra and Nehemiah will
discover in the period after the return from Babylon the beginnings of the
synagogue. Only quite rudimentary as yet, and chiefly for the purposes of
instructing those who had come back ignorant and semi-heathenish--still, they
formed a starting-point. Then came the time of terrible Syrian oppression and
persecutions, and of the Maccabean rising. We can understand, how under such
circumstances the institution of the synagogue would develop, and gradually
assume the proportions and the meaning which it afterwards attained. For it
must be borne in mind, that, in proportion as the spiritual import of the
Temple services was lost to view, and Judaism became a matter of outward
ordinances, nice distinctions, and logical discussion, the synagogue would grow
in importance. And so it came to pass, that at the time of Christ there was not
a foreign settlement of Jews without one or more synagogues--that of
Alexandria, of which both the Talmuds speak in such exaggerated language, being
specially gorgeous--while throughout Palestine they were thickly planted. It is
to these latter only that we can for the present direct attention.
Not a
town, nor a village, if it numbered only ten men, who could or would wholly
give themselves to divine things, * but had one or more synagogues.
* The so-called "Batlanim." The exact meaning of the
term has given rise to much learned discussion.
If it
be asked, why the number ten was thus fixed upon as the smallest that could
form a congregation, the reply is that, according to Numbers 14:27, the
"evil congregation" consisted of the spies who had brought a bad
report, and whose number was ten--after deducting, of course, Joshua and Caleb.
Larger cities had several, some of them many, synagogues. From Acts 6:9 we know
that such was the case in Jerusalem, tradition having also left us an account
of the synagogue of "the Alexandrians," to which class of Jews
Stephen may have belonged by birth or education, on which ground also he would
chiefly address himself to them. The Rabbis have it that, at the time of the
destruction of Jerusalem, that city had not fewer than 480, or at least 460,
synagogues. Unless the number 480 was fixed upon simply as the multiple of
symbolical numbers (4 x 10 x 12), or with a kindred mystical purpose in view,
it would, of course, be a gross exaggeration. But, as a stranger entered a town
or village, it could never be difficult to find out the synagogue. If it had
not, like our churches, its spire, pointing men, as it were, heavenward, the
highest ground in the place was at least selected for it, to symbolise that its
engagements overtopped all things else, and in remembrance of the prophetic
saying, that the Lord's house should "be established in the top of the
mountains," and "exalted above the hills" (Isa 2:2). If such a
situation could not be secured, it was sought to place it "in the corners
of streets," or at the entrance to the chief squares, according to what
was regarded as a significant direction in Proverbs 1:21. Possibly our Lord may
have had this also in view when He spoke of those who loved "to pray
standing in the synagogues and in the corners of the streets" (Matt 6:5),
it being a very common practice at the time to offer prayer on entering a
synagogue. But if no prominent site could be obtained, a pole should at least
be attached to the roof, to reach up beyond the highest house. A city whose
synagogue was lower than the other dwellings was regarded as in danger of
destruction.
Of the
architecture of ordinary synagogues, not only the oldest still in existence,
but the recent excavations in Palestine, enable us to form a correct idea.
Internally they were simply rectangular or round buildings, with a single or
double colonnade, and more or less adorned by carvings. Externally they had
generally some sacred symbol carved on the lintels--commonly the seven-branched
candlestick, or perhaps the pot of manna. *
* "Of the tabernacle in which the ark rested at Shiloh, from
the time of Joshua to that of Samuel, no trace, of course, remains. But on the
summit of a little knoll we find the remains of what was once a Jewish
synagogue, afterwards used as a church, and subsequently as a mosque. On the
lintel over the doorway, between two wreaths of flowers, is carved a vessel,
shaped like a Roman amphora. It so closely resembles the conventional type of
the 'pot of manna,' as found on coins and in the ruins of the synagogue at
Capernaum, that it doubtless formed part of the original building. It is a not
improbable conjecture that the synagogue may have been erected on the sacred
spot which for so many generations formed the centre of Jewish worship."--Those Holy Fields.
There
is one remarkable instance of the use of the latter emblem, too important to be
passed over. In Capernaum, our Lord's "own city" (Matt 9:1), there
was but one synagogue--that built at the cost of the pious centurion. For,
although our Authorised Version renders the commendation of the Jewish elders,
"He loveth our nation, and has built us a synagogue" (Luke 7:5), in the original the article is
definite: "he hath built us the
synagogue"--just as in a similar manner we infer that Nazareth had only
one synagogue (Matt 13:54). The site of the ancient Capernaum had till
comparatively recently been unknown. But its identification with the modern
Tell Hum is now so satisfactory, that few would care to question it. What is
even more interesting, the very ruins of that synagogue which the good
centurion built have been brought to light; and, as if to make doubt
impossible, its architecture is evidently that of the Herodian period. And here
comes in the incidental but complete confirmation of the gospel narrative. We
remember how, before, the Lord Jesus had by His word of blessing multiplied the
scanty provision, brought, it might be accidentally, by a lad in the company of
those five thousand who had thronged to hear Him, so that there was not only
sufficient for their wants, but enough for each of the twelve apostles to fill
his basket with the fragments of what the Saviour had dispensed. That day of
miraculous provision had been followed by a night of equally wondrous
deliverance. His disciples were crossing the lake, now tossed by one of those
sudden storms which so frequently sweep down upon it from the mountains. All at
once, in their perplexity, it was the Master Whom they saw, walking on the sea,
and nearing the ship. As the light of the moon fell upon that well-known form,
and, as He drew nigh, cast His shadow in increasing proportions upon the waters
which, obedient, bore His feet, they feared. It was a marvellous vision--too
marvellous almost to believe it a reality, and too awful to bear it, if a
reality. And so they seem to have hesitated about receiving Him into the ship.
But His presence and voice soon reassured them, and "immediately the ship
was at the land." That "land" was the seashore of Capernaum. The
next morning broke with the usual calm and beauty of spring on the lake.
Presently white sails were spreading over its tranquil waters; marking the
approach of many from the other side, who, missing "the Prophet,"
Whom, with the characteristic enthusiasm of the inhabitants of that district,
they would fain have made a king, now followed Him across the water. There
could be no difficulty in "finding Him" in "His own city,"
the home of Peter and Andrew (Mark 1:21,29). But no ordinary dwelling would
have held such a concourse as now thronged around Him. So, we imagine, the
multitude made their way towards the synagogue. On the road, we suppose, the
question and answers passed, of which we have an account in John 6:25-28. They
had now reached the entrance to the synagogue; and the following discourse was
pronounced by the Lord in the synagogue itself, as we are expressly told in
verse 59: "These things said He in the synagogue, as He taught in
Capernaum." But what is so remarkable is, that the very lintel of this
synagogue has been found, and that the device upon it bears such close
reference to the question which the Jews put to Jesus, that we can almost
imagine them pointing up to it, as they entered the synagogue, and said:
"Our fathers did eat manna in the desert; as it is written, He gave them
bread from heaven to eat" (John 6:31). For, in the words of Canon
Williams, "The lintel lying among the ruins of the good centurion's
synagogue at Capernaum has carved on it the device of the pot of manna. What is
further remarkable, this lintel is ornamented besides with a flowing pattern of
vine leaves and clusters of grapes, and another emblem of the mystery of which
our Lord discoursed so largely in this synagogue."
Before
parting from this most interesting subject, we may place beside the Master, as
it were, the two representatives of His Church, a Gentile and a Jew, both
connected with this synagogue. Of its builder, the good centurion, Canon
Williams thus writes: "In what spirit the large-hearted Roman soldier had
made his offering, the rich and elaborate carvings of cornices and
entablatures, of columns and capitals, and niches, still attest." As for
the ruler of that same synagogue, we know that it was Jairus, whose cry of
anguish and of faith brought Jesus to his house to speak the life-giving
"Talitha cumi" over the one only daughter, just bursting into
womanhood, who lay dead in that chamber, while the crowd outside and the hired
minstrels made shrill, discordant mourning.
Thus
far as to the external appearance of synagogues. Their internal arrangement
appears to have been originally upon the plan of the Temple, or, perhaps, even
of the Tabernacle. At least, the oldest still standing synagogue, that of the
Cyrenian Jews, in the island of Gerbe, is, according to the description of a
missionary, Dr. Ewald, tripartite, after the model of the Court, the Holy, and
the Most Holy Place. And in all synagogues the body of the building, with the
space around, set apart for women, represents the Court of the Women, while the
innermost and highest place, with the Ark behind, containing the rolls of the
law, represents the sanctuary itself. In turn the synagogue seems to have been
adopted as the model for the earliest Christian churches. Hence not only the
structure of the "basilica," but the very term "bema," is
incorporated in Rabbinical language. This is only what might have been
expected, considering that the earliest Christians were Jews by nationality,
and that heathenism could offer no type for Christian worship. To return. As
concerned the worshippers, it was deemed wrong to pray behind a synagogue
without turning the face to it; and a story is told (Ber. 6 b) of Elijah
appearing in the form of an Arab merchant, and punishing one guilty of this
sin. "Thou standest before thy Master as if there were two Powers [or
Gods]," said the seeming Arab; and with these words "he drew his
sword and killed him." A still more curious idea prevailed, that it was
requisite to advance the length of at least "two doors" within a
synagogue before settling to prayer, which was justified by a reference to
Proverbs 8:34 (Ber. 8 a). The inference is peculiar, but not more so, perhaps,
than those of some modern critics, and certainly not more strange than that of
the Talmud itself, which, on a preceding page, when discussing the precise
duration of the wrath of the Almighty, concludes that Balaam had been the only
person who knew it exactly, since it is written of him (Num 24:16), that he
"knew the thoughts of the Most High!" Another direction of the Talmud
was to leave the synagogue with slow steps, but to hasten to it as rapidly as
possible, since it was written (Hosea 6:3, as the Rabbis arranged the verse),
"Let us pursue to know the Lord." Rabbi Seira tells us how, at one
time, he had been scandalised by seeing the Rabbis running on the Sabbath--when
bodily rest was enjoined--to attend a sermon; but that, when he understood how
Hosea 11:10 applied to the teaching of the Halachah, he himself joined in their
race. And so Rabbi Seira, as it seems to us, somewhat caustically concludes:
"The reward of a discourse is the haste" with which people run to
it--no matter, it would appear, whether they get in to hear it, or whether
there is anything in the discourse worth the hearing.
As a
rule, synagogues were built at the expense of the congregation, though perhaps
assisted by richer neighbours. Sometimes, as we know, they were erected at the
cost of private individuals, which was supposed to involve special merit. In
other cases, more particularly when the number of Jews was small, a large room
in a private house was set apart for the purpose. This also passed into the
early Church, as we gather from Acts 2:46, 5:42. Accordingly we understand the
apostolic expression, "Church in the house" (Rom 16:3,5; 1 Cor 16:19;
Col 4:15; Phile 2), as implying that in all these and other instances a room in
a private house had been set apart, in which the Christians regularly assembled
for their worship. Synagogues were consecrated by prayer, although, even thus,
the ceremony was not deemed completed till after the ordinary prayers had been
offered by some one, though it were a passing stranger. Rules of decorum,
analogous to those enforced in the Temple, were enjoined on those who attended
the synagogue. Decency and cleanliness in dress, quietness and reverence in
demeanour, are prescribed with almost wearisome details and distinctions. Money
collections were only to be made for the poor or for the redemption of
captives. If the building were in a dangerous condition, the synagogue might be
broken down, provided another were built as rapidly as possible in its place.
But even so, the sanctity of their place remained, and synagogue-ruins might
not be converted into mourning places, nor used as thoroughfares, nor might
ropes be hung up in them, nor nets spread, nor fruits laid out for drying. The
principle of sanctity applied, of course, to all analogous uses to which such
ruins might have been put. Money collected for building a synagogue might, if
absolute necessity arose, be employed by the congregation for other purposes;
but if stones, beams, etc., had been purchased for the building, these could
not be resold, but were regarded as dedicated. A town synagogue was considered
absolutely inalienable; those in villages might be disposed of under the
direction of the local Sanhedrim, provided the locale were not afterwards to be used as a public bath, a
wash-house, a tannery, or a pool. The money realised was to be devoted to
something more sacred than the mere stone and mortar of a synagogue--say, the
ark in which the copies of the law were kept. Different from synagogues, though
devoted to kindred purposes, were the so-called "oratories" or
"places where prayer was wont to be made" (Acts 16:13). These were
generally placed outside towns and in the vicinity of running water or of the
sea (Josephus, Ant. xiv, 256-258), for the purpose of the customary lustrations
connected with prayer (Philo ii. 535).
The
separation of the sexes, which was observed even in the Temple at the time of
Christ, was strictly carried out in the synagogues, such division being made
effectual by a partition, boarded off and provided with gratings, to which
there was separate access. The practice seems simply in accordance with Eastern
manners and modes of thinking. But the Rabbis, who seek Scripture authority for
every arrangement, however trivial, find in this case their warrant in
Zechariah 12:11-14, where "the wives" are no less than five times
spoken of as "apart," while engaged in their prayerful mourning. The
synagogue was so placed that, on entering it, the worshippers would face
towards Jerusalem--mere "orientation," as it is now called, having no
meaning in Jewish worship. Beyond the middle of the synagogue rose the platform
or "bima," as it was anciently, or "almmeor," as it is
presently named. Those who were called up to it for reading ascended by the
side nearest, and descended by that most remote from their seats in the
synagogue. On this "bima" stood the pulpit, or rather lectern, the
"migdal ez," "wooden tower" of Nehemiah 8:4, whence the
prescribed portions of the law and of the prophets were read, and addresses
delivered. The reader stood; the preacher sat. Thus we find (Luke 4:20) that,
after reading a portion from the prophet Isaiah, our Lord "closed the
book, and He gave it again to the minister, and sat down," before
delivering His discourse in the synagogue of Nazareth. Prayer also was offered
standing, although in the Temple the worshippers prostrated themselves, a
practice still continued in certain of the most solemn litanies. The pulpit or
lectern--"migdal" (tower), "chisse" and
"churseja" (chair or throne), or "pergulah" (the Latin
"pergula," probably elevation)--stood in the middle of the
"bima," and in front of "the ark." The latter, which
occupied the innermost place in the synagogue, as already noticed, corresponded
to the Most Holy Place in the Temple, and formed the most important part. It
was called the "aron" (ark), the "tevah," or
"tevutha" (chest, like that in which Noah and Moses were saved), or
the "hechal" (little temple). In reality, it consisted of a press or
chest, in which the rolls of the law were deposited. This "ark" was
made movable (Taan. ii. 1,2), so as to lift out on occasions of public fasting
and prayer, in order to have it placed in the street or market-place where the
people gathered. Sometimes there was also a second press for the rolls of the
prophets, in which the disused or damaged rolls of the law were likewise
deposited. In front of the ark hung the "vilon" ("velum,"
veil), in imitation of that before the Holy Place. Above it was suspended the
"ner olam," or ever-burning lamp, and near to it stood the
eight-branched candlestick, lit during the eight days of the feast of the
dedication of the Temple (John 10:22), or Candlemas. The practice of lighting
candles and lamps, not merely for use, but in honour of the day or feast, is
not unknown in the synagogues. Of course, in regard to this, as to other
practices, it is impossible to determine what was the exact custom at the time
of our Lord, although the reader may be able to infer how much and what special
practices may have been gradually introduced. It would lead beyond our present
scope to describe the various directions to be observed in copying out the
synagogue-rolls, which embodied the five books of Moses, or to detail what
would render them unfit for use. No less than twenty such causes are mentioned
by the Rabbis. At present the vellum, on which the Pentateuch is written, is
affixed to two rollers, and as each portion of the law is read it is unrolled
from the right, and rolled on to the left roller. The roll itself was fastened
together by linen wrappers or cloths ("mitpachoth"), and then placed
in a "case" ("tik," the Greek "theke"). All these
articles are already mentioned in the Mishnah. Later practices need not here
occupy our attention. Lastly, it should be noted, that at first the people
probably stood in the synagogues or sat on the ground. But as the services
became more protracted, sitting accommodation had to be provided. The
congregation sat facing the ark. On the other hand, "the rulers of the
synagogue," Rabbis, distinguished Pharisees, and others, who sought honour
of men, claimed "the chief seats," which were placed with their backs
to the ark, and facing the worshippers. These seats, which bear the same name
as in the New Testament, were made objects of special ambition (Matt 23:6), and
rank, dignity, or seniority entitled a Rabbi or other influential man to
priority. Our Lord expressly refers to this (Matt 23:6) as one of the
characteristic manifestations of Pharisaical pride. That both the same spirit
and practice had crept into some of the early churches, appears from the
warning of St. James (James 2:2,3) against an un-Christ-like "respect of
persons," which would assign a place high up in "synagogues" of
Christians to the mere possession of "goodly apparel" or the wearing
of the "gold ring."
Hitherto
we have chiefly described the outward arrangements of the synagogues. It will
now be necessary, however rapidly in this place, to sketch their various uses,
their worship, and their officials, most of which are also referred to in
various parts of the New Testament.
Chapter 17
The Worship of the Synagogue
One of
the most difficult questions in Jewish history is that connected with the
existence of a synagogue within the Temple. That such a "synagogue"
existed, and that its meeting-place was in "the hall of hewn stones,"
at the south-eastern angle of the court of the priest, cannot be called in
question, in face of the clear testimony of contemporary witnesses. Considering
that "the hall of hew stones" was also the meeting-place for the
great Sanhedrim, and that not only legal decisions, but lectures and theological
discussions formed part of their occupation, we might be tempted to conjecture
that the term "synagogue" had been employed in its wider sense, since
such buildings were generally used throughout the country for this two-fold
purpose as well as for worship. Of theological lectures and discussions in the
Temple, we have an instance on the occasion when our Lord was found by His
parents "sitting in the midst of the doctors, both hearing them, and
asking them questions" (Luke 2:46). And it can scarcely be doubted, that
this also explains how the scribes and Pharisees could so frequently "come
upon Him," while He taught in the Temple, with their difficult and
entangling questions, up to that rejoinder about the nature of the Messiah,
with which He finally silenced them: "If David then call Him Lord, how is
He his Son?" (Matt 22:45). But in reference to the so-called
"Temple-synagogue," there is this difficulty, that certain prayers
and rites seem to have been connected with it, which formed no part of the
regular Temple services, and yet were somehow engrafted upon them. We can
therefore only conclude that the growing change in the theological views of
Israel, before and about the time of Christ, made the Temple services alone
appear insufficient. The symbolical and typical elements which constituted the
life and centre of Temple worship had lost their spiritual meaning and
attraction to the majority of that generation, and their place was becoming
occupied by so-called teaching and outward performances. Thus the worship of
the letter took the place of that of the spirit, and Israel was preparing to
reject Christ for Pharisaism. The synagogue was substituted for the Temple, and
overshadowed it, even within its walls, by an incongruous mixture of
man-devised worship with the God-ordained typical rites of the sanctuary. Thus,
so far from the "Temple-synagogue" being the model for those
throughout the country, as some writers maintain, it seems to us of later
origin, and to have borrowed many rites from the country synagogues, in which
the people had become accustomed to them.
The
subject has a far deeper than merely historical interest. For the presence of a
synagogue within the Temple, or rather, as we prefer to put it, the addition of
synagogue-worship to that of the Temple, is sadly symbolical. It is, so to
speak, one of those terribly significant utterances (by deed), in which Israel,
all unconsciously, pronounced its own doom, just as was this: "His blood
be upon us and our children," or the cry for the release of Barabbas (the
son of the father), who had been condemned "for sedition" and
"murder"--no doubt in connection with a pseudo-Messianic rising
against the Roman power--instead of the true Son of the Father, who would
indeed have "restored the kingdom to Israel." And yet there was
nothing in the worship itself of the synagogue which could have prevented
either the Lord, or His apostles and early followers, from attending it till
the time of final separation had come. Readers of the New Testament know what
precious opportunities it offered for making known the Gospel. Its services
were, indeed, singularly elastic. For the main object of the synagogue was the
teaching of the people. The very idea of its institution, before and at the
time of Ezra, explains and conveys this, and it is confirmed by the testimony
of Josephus (Ag. Apion, ii, 157-172). But perhaps the ordinary reader of the
New Testament may have failed to notice, how prominently this element in the
synagogue is brought out in the gospel history. Yet the word "teaching"
is used so frequently in connection with our Lord's appearance in the
synagogue, that its lesson is obvious (see Matt 4:23; Mark 1:21, 6:2; Luke
4:15, 6:6, 13:10; John 6:59, 18:20). The "teaching" part of the
service consisted mainly in reading a section from the law, with which the
reading of a portion from the prophets, and a sermon, or address, were
conjoined. Of course, the liturgical element could in such services never have
been quite wanting, and it soon acquired considerable importance. It consisted
of prayer and the pronouncing of the Aaronic blessing (Num 6:24-26) by
priests--that is, of course, not by Rabbis, who were merely teachers or
doctors, but by lineal descendants of the house of Aaron. There was no service
of "praise" in the synagogues.
Public
worship * commenced on ordinary occasions with the so-called "Shema,"
which was preceded in the morning and evening by two "benedictions,"
and succeeded in the morning by one, and in the evening by two, benedictions;
the second being, strictly speaking, an evening prayer.
* Our description here applies to the worship of the ancient, not of the modern synagogue;
and we have thought it best to confine ourselves to the testimony of the
Mishnah, so as to avoid the danger of bringing in practices of a later date.
The
"Shema" was a kind of "belief," or "creed,"
composed of these three passages of Scripture: Deuteronomy 6:4-9, 11:13-21;
Numbers 15:37-41. It obtained its name from the initial word "shema":
"Hear, O Israel," in Deuteronomy 6:4. From the Mishnah (Ber. 1. 3) we
learn, that this part of the service existed already before the time of our
Lord; and we are told (Ber. iii. 3), that all males were bound to repeat this
belief twice every day; children and slaves, as well as women, being exempted
from the obligation. There can be no reasonable doubt on the subject, as the
Mishnah expressly mentions the three Scriptural sections of the
"Shema," the number of benedictions before and after it, and even the
initial words of the closing benediction (Ber. ii. 2, i. 4; Tamid, v. 1). We
have, therefore, here certain prayers which our Lord Himself had not only
heard, but in which He must have shared--to what extent will appear in the
sequel. These prayers still exist in the synagogue, although with later additions,
which, happily, it is not difficult to eliminate. Before transcribing them, it
may be quoted as a mark of the value attached to them, that it was lawful to
say this and the other daily prayers--to which we shall hereafter refer--and
the "grace at meat," not only in the Hebrew, but in any other
language, in order to secure a general understanding of the service (Sotah,
vii. 1). At the same time, expressions are used which lead us to suppose that,
while the liturgical formulae connected with the "Shema" were fixed,
there were local variations, in the way of lengthening or shortening (Ber. i.
4). The following are the "benedictions" before the
"Shema," in their original form:
1.
"Blessed be Thou, O Lord, King of the world, Who formest the light and
createst the darkness, Who makest peace and createst everything; Who, in mercy,
givest light to the earth and to those who dwell upon it, and in Thy goodness
day by day and every day renewest the works of creation. Blessed be the Lord
our God for the glory of His handiwork and for the light-giving lights which He
has made for His praise. Selah! Blessed be the Lord our God, Who hath formed
the lights." *
* This "benediction," while acknowledging the Creator,
has such frequent reference to God in connection with the "lights,"
that it reads like a confession of Israel against the idolatries of Babylon.
This circumstance may help to fix the time of its origination.
2.
"With great love hast Thou loved us, O Lord our God, and with much
overflowing pity hast Thou pitied us, our Father and our King. For the sake of
our fathers who trusted in Thee, and Thou taughtest them the statutes of life,
have mercy upon us and teach us. Enlighten our eyes in Thy law; cause our
hearts to cleave to Thy commandments; unite our hearts to love and fear Thy
name, and we shall not be put to shame, world without end. For Thou art a God
Who preparest salvation, and us hast Thou chosen from among all nations and
tongues, and hast in truth brought us near to Thy great Name--Selah--that we
may lovingly praise Thee and Thy Oneness. Blessed be the Lord Who in love chose
His people Israel."
After
this followed the "Shema." The Mishnah gives the following beautiful
explanation of the order in which the portions of Scripture of which it is
composed are arranged (Ber. ii. 2). The section Deuteronomy 6:4-9 is said to
precede that in 11:13-21, so that we might "take upon ourselves the yoke
of the kingdom of heaven, and only after that the yoke of the
commandments." Again: Deuteronomy 11:13-21 precedes Numbers 15:37-41,
because the former applies, as it were, both night and day; the latter only by
day. The reader cannot fail to observe the light cast by the teaching of the
Mishnah upon the gracious invitation of our Lord: "Come unto Me, all ye
that labour and are heavy laden, and I will give you rest. Take My yoke upon
you, and learn of Me; for I am meek and lowly in heart: and ye shall find rest
unto your souls. For My yoke is easy, and My burden is light" (Matt
11:28-30). These words must indeed have had a special significance to those who
remembered the Rabbinic lesson as to the relation between the kingdom of heaven
and the commandments, and they would now understand how by coming to the
Saviour they would first take upon them "the yoke of the kingdom of
heaven," and then that of "the commandments," finding this
"yoke easy" and the "burden light."
The
prayer after the "Shema" was as follows: *
* In the form here given it is older than even the prayer referred
to in the Mishnah (Ber. ii. 2).
"True
it is, that Thou art Jehovah our God and the God of our fathers, our King and
the King of our fathers, our Saviour and the Saviour of our fathers, our
Creator, the Rock of our salvation, our Help and our Deliverer. Thy Name is
from everlasting, and there is no God beside Thee. A new song did they that
were delivered sing to Thy Name by the seashore; together did all praise and
own Thee King, and say, Jehovah shall reign world without end! Blessed be the
Lord Who saveth Israel!"
The
anti-Sadducean views expressed in this prayer will strike the student of that
period, while he will also be much impressed with its suitableness and beauty.
The special prayer for the evening is of not quite so old a date as the three
just quoted. But as it is referred to in the Mishnah, and is so apt and simple,
we reproduce it, as follows:
"O
Lord our God! cause us to lie down in peace, and raise us up again to life, O
our King! Spread over us the tabernacle of Thy peace; strengthen us before Thee
in Thy good counsel, and deliver us for Thy Name's sake. Be Thou for protection
round about us; keep far from us the enemy, the pestilence, the sword, famine,
and affliction. Keep Satan from before and from behind us, and hide us in the
shadow of Thy wings, for Thou art a God Who helpest and deliverest us; and
Thou, O God, art a gracious and merciful King. Keep Thou our going out and our
coming in, for life and for peace, from henceforth and for ever!" (To this
prayer a further addition was made at a later period.)
The
"Shema" and its accompanying "benedictions" seem to have
been said in the synagogue at the lectern; whereas for the next series of
prayers the leader of the devotions went forward and stood before "the
ark." Hence the expression, "to go up before the ark," for
leading in prayer. This difference in position seems implied in many passages
of the Mishnah (specially Megillah, iv.), which makes a distinction between
saying the "Shema" and "going up before the ark." The prayers
offered before the ark consisted of the so-called eighteen eulogies, or
benedictions, and formed the "tephillah," or supplication, in the
strictest sense of the term. These eighteen, or rather, as they are now,
nineteen, eulogies are of various dates--the earliest being the first three and
the last three. There can be no reasonable doubt that these were said at
worship in the synagogues, when our Lord was present. Next in date are eulogies
4, 5, 6, 7, 9, and 16. Eulogy 7, which in its present position seems somewhat
incongruous, dates from a period of great national calamity--perhaps the time
of Pompey. The other eulogies, and some insertions in the older benedictions,
were added after the fall of the Jewish commonwealth--eulogy 12 especially
being intended against the early Jewish converts to Christianity. In all
likelihood it had been the practice originally to insert prayers of private
composition between the (present) first three and last three eulogies; and out
of these the later eulogies were gradually formulated. At any rate, we know
that on Sabbaths and on other festive occasions only the first three and the
last three eulogies were repeated, other petitions being inserted between them.
There was thus room for the endless repetitions and "long prayers"
which the Saviour condemned (Mark 12:40; Luke 20:47). Besides, it must be borne
in mind that, both on entering and leaving the synagogue, it was customary to
offer prayer, and that it was a current Rabbinical saying, "Prolix prayer
prolongeth life." But as we are sure that, on the Sabbaths when Our Lord attended
the synagogues at Nazareth and Capernaum, the first three and the last three of
the eulogies were repeated, we produce them here, as follows:
1.
"Blessed be the Lord our God and the God of our fathers, the God of
Abraham, the God of Isaac, and the God of Jacob; the great, the mighty, and the
terrible God; the Most High God, Who showeth mercy and kindness, Who createth
all things, Who remembereth the gracious promises to the fathers, and bringeth
a Saviour to their children's children, for His own Name's sake, in love. O
King, Helper, Saviour, and Shield! Blessed art Thou, O Jehovah, the Shield of
Abraham."
2.
"Thou, O Lord, art mighty for ever; Thou, Who quickenest the dead, art
mighty to save. In Thy mercy Thou preservest the living; Thou quickenest the
dead; in Thine abundant pity Thou bearest up those who fall, and healest those
who are diseased, and loosest those who are bound, and fulfillest Thy faithful
word to those who sleep in the dust. Who is like unto Thee, Lord of strength,
and who can be compared to Thee, Who killest and makest alive, and causest
salvation to spring forth? And faithful art Thou to give life unto the dead.
Blessed be Thou, Jehovah, Who quickenest the dead!"
3.
"Thou art holy, and Thy Name is holy; and the holy ones praise Thee every
day. Selah! Blessed art Thou, Jehovah God, the Holy One!"
It is
impossible not to feel the solemnity of these prayers. They breathe the deepest
hopes of Israel in simple, Scriptural language. But who can fully realise their
sacred import as uttered not only in the Presence, but by the very lips of the
Lord Jesus Christ, Who Himself was their answer?
The
three concluding eulogies were as follows:
17.
"Take gracious pleasure, O Jehovah our God, in Thy people Israel, and in
their prayers. Accept the burnt-offerings of Israel, and their prayers, with
thy good pleasure; and may the services of Thy people Israel be ever acceptable
unto Thee. And oh that our eyes may see it, as Thou turnest in mercy to Zion!
Blessed be Thou, O Jehovah, Who restoreth His Shechinah to Zion!"
18.
"We praise Thee, because Thou art Jehovah our God, and the God of our
fathers, for ever and ever. Thou art the Rock of our life, the Shield of our
salvation, from generation to generation. We laud Thee, and declare Thy praise
for our lives which are kept within Thine hand, and for our souls which are
committed unto Thee, and for Thy wonders which are with us every day, and Thy
wondrous deeds and Thy goodnesses, which are at all seasons--evening, morning,
and mid-day. Thou gracious One, Whose compassions never end; Thou pitying One,
Whose grace never ceaseth--for ever do we put our trust in Thee! And for all
this Thy Name, O our King, be blessed and extolled always, for ever and ever!
And all living bless Thee--Selah--and praise Thy Name in truth, O God, our
Salvation and our Help. Blessed art Thou, Jehovah; Thy Name is the gracious
One, to Whom praise is due."
19. (We
give this eulogy in its shorter form, as it is at present used in evening
prayer.) "Oh bestow on Thy people Israel great peace, for ever; for Thou
art King and Lord of all peace, and it is good in Thine eyes to bless Thy
people Israel with praise at all times and in every hour. Blessed art Thou,
Jehovah, Who blesseth His people Israel with peace."
Another
act, hitherto, so far as we know, unnoticed, requires here to be mentioned. It
invests the prayers just quoted with a new and almost unparalleled interest.
According to the Mishnah (Megillah, iv. 5), the person who read in the
synagogue the portion from the prophets was also expected to say the
"Shema," and to offer the prayers which have just been quoted. It
follows that, in all likelihood, our Lord Himself had led the devotions in the
synagogue of Capernaum on that Sabbath when He read the portion from the
prophecies of Isaiah which was that day "fulfilled in their hearing"
(Luke 4:16-21). Nor is it possible to withstand the impression, how specially
suitable to the occasion would have been the words of these prayers,
particularly those of eulogies 2 and 17.
The prayers
were conducted or repeated aloud by one individual, specially deputed for the
occasion, the congregation responding by an "Amen." The liturgical
service concluded with the priestly benediction (Num 6:23,24), spoken by the
descendants of Aaron. In case none such were present, "the legate of the
Church," as the leader of the devotions was called, repeated the words
from the Scriptures in their connection. In giving the benediction, the priests
elevated their hands up to the shoulders (Sotah, vii. 6); in the Temple, up to
the forehead. Hence this rite is designated by the expression, "the
lifting up of the hands." *
* The apostle may have had this in his mind when, in directing the
order of public ministration, he spoke of "the men...lifting up holy
hands, without wrath or doubting" (1 Tim 2:8). At any rate, the expression
is precisely the same as that used by the Rabbis.
According
to the present practice, the fingers of the two hands are so joined together
and separated as to form five interstices; and a mystic meaning attaches to
this. It was a later superstition to forbid looking at the priests' hands, as
involving physical danger. But the Mishnah already directs that priests having
blemishes on their hands, or their fingers dyed, were not to pronounce the
benediction, lest the attention of the people should be attracted. Of the
attitude to be observed in prayer, this is perhaps scarcely the place to speak
in detail. Suffice it, that the body was to be fully bent, yet so, that care
was taken never to make it appear as if the service had been burdensome. One of
the Rabbis tells us, that, with this object in view, he bent down as does a
branch; while, in lifting himself up again, he did it like a serpent--beginning
with the head! Any one deputed by the rulers of a congregation might say
prayers, except a minor. This, however, applies only to the "Shema."
The eulogies or "tephillah" proper, as well as the priestly
benediction, could not be pronounced by those who were not properly clothed,
nor by those who were so blind as not to be able to discern daylight. If any
one introduced into the prayers heretical views, or what were regarded as such,
he was immediately stopped; and, if any impropriety had been committed, was put
under the ban for a week. One of the most interesting and difficult questions
relates to certain modes of dress and appearance, and certain expressions used
in prayer, which the Mishnah (Megillah, iv. 8,9) declares either to mark heresy
or to indicate that a man was not to be allowed to lead prayers in the
synagogue. It may be, that some of these statements refer not only to certain
Jewish "heretics," but also to the early Jewish Christians. If so,
they may indicate certain peculiarities with which they were popularly
credited.
Of the
services hitherto noticed, the most important were the repetition of the
eulogies and the priestly benediction. What now followed was regarded as quite
as solemn, if, indeed, not more so. It has already been pointed out, that the
main object of the synagogue was the teaching of the people. This was specially
accomplished by the reading of the law. At present the Pentateuch is for this
purpose arranged into fifty-four sections, of which one is read on each
successive Sabbath of the year, beginning immediately after the feast of
Tabernacles. But anciently the lectionary, at least in Palestine, seems to have
been differently arranged, and the Pentateuch so divided that its reading
occupied three, or, according to some, three and a-half years (half a
Jubilee-period). The section for the day was subdivided, so that every Sabbath
at least seven persons were called up to read, each a portion, which was to
consist of not less than three verses. The first reader began, and the last
closed, with a benediction. As the Hebrew had given place to the Aramaic, a
"meturgeman," or interpreter, stood by the side of the reader, and
translated verse by verse into the vernacular. It was customary to have service
in the synagogues, not only on Sabbaths and feast-days, but also on the second
and fifth days of the week (Monday and Thursday), when the country-people came
to market, and when the local Sanhedrim also sat for the adjudication of minor
causes. At such week-day services only three persons were called up to read in
the law; on new moon's day and on the intermediate days of a festive week,
four; on festive days--when a section from the prophets was also read--five;
and on the day of atonement, six. Even a minor was allowed to read, and, if
qualified, to act as "meturgeman." The section describing the sin of
Reuben, and that giving a second account of the sin of the golden calf, were
read, but not interpreted; those recounting the priestly blessing, and, again,
the sin of David and of Amnon, were neither read nor interpreted. The reading
of the law was followed by a lesson from the prophets. At present there is a
regular lectionary, in which these lessons are so selected as to suit the
sections from the law appointed for the day. This arrangement has been traced
to the time of the Syrian persecutions, when all copies of the law were sought
for and destroyed; and the Jewish authorities are supposed to have selected
portions from the prophets to replace those from the law which might not be
produced in public. But it is evident that, if these persecuting measures had
been rigidly enforced, the sacred rolls of the prophets would not have escaped
destruction any more than those of the law. Besides, it is quite certain that
such a lectionary of the prophets as that presently in use did not exist at the
time of our Lord, nor even when the Mishnah was collated. Considerable liberty
seems to have been left to individuals; and the expression used by St. Luke in
reference to our Lord in the synagogue at Capernaum (Luke 4:17), "And when
He had opened the book, He found the place where it was written," most
accurately describes the state of matters. For, from Megillah iv. 4, we gather
that, in reading from the prophets, it was lawful to pass over one or more
verses, provided there were no pause between the reading and the translation of
the "meturgeman." For here also the services of a
"meturgeman" were employed; only that he did not, as in reading the
law, translate verse by verse, but after every three verses. It is a remarkable
fact that the Rabbis exclude from public reading the section in the prophecies
of Ezekiel which describes "the chariot and wheels." Rabbi Elieser
would also have excluded that in Ezekiel 16:2.
The
reading of the prophets was often followed by a sermon or address, with which the
service concluded. The preacher was called "darshan," and his address
a "derashah" (homily, sermon, from "darash," to ask,
inquire, or discuss). When the address was a learned theological
discussion--especially in academies--it was not delivered to the people
directly, but whispered into the ear of an "amora," or speaker, who
explained to the multitude in popular language the weighty sayings which the
Rabbi had briefly communicated to him. A more popular sermon, on the other
hand, was called a "meamar," literally, a "speech, or
talk." These addresses would be either Rabbinical expositions of
Scripture, or else doctrinal discussions, in which appeal would be made to
tradition and to the authority of certain great teachers. For it was laid down
as a principle (Eduj. i. 3), that "every one is bound to teach in the very
language of his teacher." In view of this two-fold fact, we can in some
measure understand the deep impression which the words of our Lord produced,
even on those who remained permanently uninfluenced by them. The substance of
His addresses was far other than they had ever heard of, or conceived possible.
It seemed as if they opened quite a new world of thought, hope, duty, and
comfort. No wonder that even in contemptuous Capernaum "all bare Him
witness, and wondered at the gracious words which proceeded out of His
mouth"; and that the very Temple-guard sent to make Him prisoner were
overawed, and before the council could only give this account of their strange
negligence: "Never man spake like this man" (John 7:46). Similarly,
the form also of His teaching was so different from the constant appeal of the
Rabbis to mere tradition; it seemed all to come so quite fresh and direct from
heaven, like the living waters of the Holy Spirit, that "the people were
astonished at His doctrine: for He taught them as one having authority, and not
as the scribes" (Matt 7:28,29).
Chapter 18
Brief Outline of Ancient Jewish Theological Literature
The
arrangements of the synagogue, as hitherto described, combined in a remarkable
manner fixedness of order with liberty of the individual. Alike the seasons and
the time of public services, their order, the prayers to be offered, and the
portions of the law to be read were fixed. On the other hand, between the eighteen
"benedictions" said on ordinary days, and the seven repeated on the
Sabbaths, free prayer might be inserted; the selection from the prophets, with
which the public reading concluded--the "Haphtarah" (from
"patar," to "conclude")--seems to have been originally left
to individual choice; while the determination who was to read, or to conduct
the prayers, or to address the people, was in the hands of the "rulers of
the synagogue" (Acts 13:15). The latter, who were probably also the
members of the local Sanhedrim, had naturally charge of the conduct of public
worship, as well as of the government and discipline of the synagogues. They
were men learned in the law and of good repute, whom the popular voice
designated, but who were regularly set apart by "the laying on of
hands," or the "Semichah," which was done by at least three, who
had themselves received ordination, upon which the candidate had the formal
title of Rabbi bestowed on him, and was declared qualified to administer the
law (Sanh. 13 b). The Divine Majesty was supposed to be in the midst of each
Sanhedrim, on account of which even that consisting of only three members might
be designated as "Elohim." Perhaps this may have been said in
explanation and application of Psalm 82:6: "I have said, Ye are Elohim;
and all of you children of the Most High."
The
special qualifications for the office of Sanhedrist, mentioned in Rabbinical
writings, are such as to remind us of the directions of St. Paul to Timothy (1
Tim 3:1-10). A member of the Sanhedrim must be wise, modest, God-fearing,
truthful, not greedy of filthy lucre, given to hospitality, kindly, not a
gambler, nor a usurer, nor one who traded in the produce of Sabbatical years,
nor yet one who indulged in unlawful games (Sanh. iii. 3). They were called
"Sekenim," "elders" (Luke 7:3), "Memunim,"
"rulers" (Mark 5:22), "Parnasin," "feeders, overseers,
shepherds of the flock" (Acts 20:28; 1 Peter 5:2), and
"Manhigei," "guides" (Heb 13:7). They were under the
presidency and supreme rule of an "Archisynagogos," or
"Rosh-ha-Cheneseth," "head of the synagogue" (Yom. vii. 1;
Sot. vii. 7), who sometimes seems to have even exercised sole authority. The
designation occurs frequently in the New Testament (Matt 9:18; Mark 5:35,36,38;
Luke 8:41,49, 13:14; Acts 18:8,17). The inferior functions in the synagogue
devolved on the "chassan," or "minister" (Luke 4:20). In
course of time, however, the "chassanim" combined with their original
duties the office of schoolmaster; and at present they lead both the singing
and the devotions of the synagogue. This duty originally devolved not on any
fixed person, but whoever was chosen might for the time being act as
"Sheliach Zibbur," or "legate of the congregation." Most
modern writers have imagined, that the expression "angel of the
Church," in the epistles to the seven churches in the book of Revelation,
was used in allusion to this ancient arrangement of the synagogue. But the fact
that the "Sheliach Zibbur" represented not an office but a function,
renders this view untenable. Besides, in that case, the corresponding Greek
expression would rather have been "apostle" than "angel of the
Church." Possibly, however, the writer of the Epistle to the Hebrews may
refer to it, when he designates the Lord Jesus "the Apostle and
High-Priest of our profession" (Heb 3:1). Besides these functionaries, we
also read of "Gabaei Zedakah," or collectors of charity, to whom the
Talmud (B. Bathra, 8 b) by a jeu de mots
* applies the promise that they "shall be as the stars for ever and
ever" (Dan 12:3), since they lead many to "righteousness."
* Zedakah means righteousness, but is also used for
"charity."
Alms
were collected at regular times every week, either in money or in victuals. At
least two were employed in collecting, and three in distributing charity, so as
to avoid the suspicion of dishonesty or partiality. These collectors of
charity, who required to be "men of good repute, and faithful," are
thought by many to have been the model for the institution of the Diaconate in
the early Church. But the analogy scarcely holds good; nor, indeed, were such
collectors employed in every synagogue.
In
describing the conduct of public worship in the synagogues, reference was made
to the "meturgeman," who translated into the vernacular dialect what
was read out of the Hebrew Scriptures, and also to the "darshan," who
expounded the Scriptures or else the traditional law in an address, delivered
after the reading of the "Haphtarah," or section from the prophets.
These two terms will have suggested names which often occur in writings on
Jewish subjects, and may fitly lead to some remarks on Jewish theology at the
time of our Lord. Now the work of the "meturgeman" * was perpetuated
in the Targum, and that of the "darshan" in the Midrash.
* Hence also the term "dragoman."
Primarily
the Targum, then, was intended as a translation of the Hebrew Scriptures into
the vernacular Aramaean. Of course, such translations might be either literal,
or else more or less paraphrastic. Every Targum would also naturally represent
the special views of the translator, and be interesting as affording an insight
into the ideas prevalent at the time, and the manner in which Scripture was
understood. But some Targumim are much more paraphrastic than others, and
indeed become a kind of commentary, showing us the popular theology of the
time. Strictly speaking, we have really no Targum dating from the time of our
Lord, nor even from the first century of our era. There can be no doubt,
however, that such a Targum did exist, although it has been lost. Still, the
Targumim preserved to us, although collated, and having received their present
form at later periods, contain very much that dates from the Temple-period, and
even before that. Mentioning them in the order of their comparative antiquity,
we have the Targum of Onkelos, on the five books of Moses; the Targum of
Jonathan, on the prophets (inclusive of Joshua, Judges, and the books of Samuel
and of the Kings); the so-called (or pseudo) Jonathan on the Pentateuch; and
the Jerusalem Targum, which is but a fragment. Probably the latter two were
intended to be supplemental to the Targum Onkelos. Late criticism has thrown
doubt even on the existence of such a person as Onkelos. Whoever may have been
the author, this Targum, in its present form, dates probably from the third,
that of Jonathan on the prophets from the fourth century.
In some
respects more interesting than the Targumim are the Midrashim, of which we
possess three, dating probably, in their present form, from the first or second
century of our era, but embodying many parts much older. These are--mentioning
them again in the order of their antiquity--"Siphra" (the book), a
commentary on Leviticus; "Siphri," a commentary on Numbers and
Deuteronomy; and "Mechiltha," a commentary on certain portions of
Exodus. But we have even a monument more interesting than these, of the views
of the ancient Pharisees, and of their Scriptural interpretations. Some of the
fathers referred to a work called "Lesser Genesis," or the "Book
of Jubilees." This had been lost to theological literature, till again
discovered within the present century, although not in the original Hebrew, nor
even in its first or Greek translation, but in an Ethiopic rendering from the
latter. The work, which no doubt dates from the era of our Lord, covers the
same ground as the first book of Moses, whence the name of "Lesser
Genesis." It gives the Biblical narrative from the creation of the world
to the institution of the Passover, in the spirit in which the Judaism of that
period would view it. The legendary additions, the Rabbinical ideas expressed,
the interpretations furnished, are just such as one would expect to find in
such a work. One of the main objects of the writer seems to have been the
chronology of the book of Genesis, which it is attempted to settle. All events
are recorded according to Jubilee-periods of forty-nine years, whence the name
"Book of Jubilees," given to the work. These "Jubilees" are
again arranged into "weeks," each of seven years (a day for a year);
and events are classified as having taken place in a certain month of a certain
year, of a certain "week" of years, of a certain
"Jubilee"-period. Another tendency of the book, which, however, it
has in common with all similar productions, is to trace up all later
institutions to the patriarchal period. *
* Although the "Book of Jubilees" seems most likely of
Pharisaic authorship, the views expressed in it are not always those of the
Pharisees. Thus the resurrection is denied, although the immortality of the
soul is maintained.
Besides
these works, another class of theological literature has been preserved to us,
around which of late much and most serious controversy has gathered. Most
readers, of course, know about the Apocrypha; but these works are called the
"pseudo-epigraphic writings." Their subject-matter may be described
as mainly dealing with unfulfilled prophecy; and they are couched in language
and figures borrowed, among others, from the book of Daniel. In fact, they read
like attempts at imitating certain portions of that prophecy--only that their
scope is sometimes wider. This class of literature is larger than those not
acquainted with the period might have expected. Yet when remembering the
troubles of the time, the feverish expectations of a coming deliverance, and
the peculiar cast of mind and training of those who wrote them, they scarcely
seem more numerous, nor perhaps even more extravagant, than a certain kind of
prophetic literature, abundant among us not long ago, which the fear of Napoleon
or other political events from time to time called forth. To that kind of
production, they seem, at least to us, to bear an essential likeness--only
that, unlike the Western, the Oriental expounder of unfulfilled prophecy
assumes rather the language of the prophet than that of the commentator, and
clothes his views in mystic emblematic language. In general, this kind of
literature may be arranged into Greek and Hebrew--according as the writers were
either Egyptian (Hellenistic) or Palestinian Jews. Considerable difficulty
exists as to the precise date of some of these writings--whether previous or
subsequent to the time of Christ. These difficulties are, of course, increased
when it is sought to fix the precise period when each of them was composed. Still,
late historical investigations have led to much accord on general points.
Without referring to the use which opponents of Christianity have of late
attempted to make of these books, it may be safely asserted that their proper
study and interpretation will yet be made very helpful, not only in casting
light upon the period, but in showing the essential difference between the
teaching of the men of that age and that of the New Testament. For each branch
and department of sacred study, the more carefully, diligently, and impartially
it is pursued, affords only fresh testimony to that truth which is most
certainly, and on the best and surest grounds, believed among us.
It
were, however, a mistake to suppose that the Rabbinical views, extravagant as
they so often are, were propounded quite independently of Scripture. On the
contrary, every traditional ordinance, every Rabbinical institution, nay, every
legend and saying, is somehow foisted upon the text of the Old Testament. To
explain this, even in the briefest manner, it is necessary to state that, in
general, Jewish traditionalism is distinguished into the "Halachah"
and the "Haggadah." The "Halachah" (from
"halach," to "walk") indicates the settled legal determinations,
which constituted the "oral law," or "Thorah shebeal peh."
Nothing could here be altered, nor was any freedom left to the individual
teacher, save that of explanation and illustration. The object of the
"Halachah" was to state in detail, and to apply to all possible
cases, the principles laid down in the law of Moses; as also to surround it, as
it were, with "a hedge," in order to render every unwitting
transgression impossible. The "Halachah" enjoyed not only the same
authority with the law of Moses, but, as being explanatory, in some respects
was even more highly esteemed. Indeed, strictly speaking, it was regarded as
equally with the Pentateuch the revelation of God to Moses; only the form or
manner of revelation was regarded as different--the one being committed to writing,
the other handed down by word of mouth. According to tradition, Moses explained
the traditional law successively to Aaron, to his sons, to the seventy elders,
and to the people--care being taken that each class heard it four times
(Maimonides' Preface to Seraim, 1 a).
The Talmud itself attempts to prove that the whole traditional law, as well as
the writings of the prophets and the Hagiographa, had been communicated to
Moses, by quoting Exodus 24:12: "I will give thee tables of stone, and a
law, and commandments which I have written; that thou mayest teach them."
"The 'tables of stone,'" argues Rabbi Levi (Ber. 5 1), "are the
ten commandments; the 'law' is the written law (in the Pentateuch); the
'commandments' are the Mishnah; 'which I have written,' refers to the prophets
and the Hagiographa; while the words, 'that thou mayest teach them,' point to
the Gemara. From this we learn, that all this was given to Moses on
Sinai."
If such
was the "Halachah," it is not so easy to define the limits of the
"Haggadah." The term, which is derived from the verb
"higgid," to "discuss," or "tell about," covers
all that possessed not the authority of strict legal determinations. It was
legend, or story, or moral, or exposition, or discussion, or application--in
short, whatever the fancy or predilections of a teacher might choose to make
it, so that he could somehow connect it either with Scripture or with a
"Halachah." For this purpose some definite rules were necessary to
preserve, if not from extravagance, at least from utter absurdity. Originally
there were four such canons for connecting the "Haggadah" with
Scripture. Contracting, after the favourite manner of the Jews, the initial
letters, these four canons were designated by the word "Pardes" (Paradise). They were--1.
To ascertain the plain meaning of a passage (the "Peshat"); 2. To
take the single letters of a word as an indication or hint ("Remes")
of other words, or even of whole sentences; 3. The "Derush," or
practical exposition of a passage; and 4. To find out the "Sod"
(mystery), or mystical meaning of a verse or word. These four canons were
gradually enlarged into thirty-two rules, which gave free vent to every kind of
fancifulness. Thus one of these rules--the "Gematria" (geometry,
calculation)--allowed the interpreter to find out the numerical value of the
letters in a word--the Hebrew letters, like the Roman, being also numerals--and
to substitute for a word one or more which had the same numerical value. Thus,
if in Numbers 12:1 we read that Moses was married to an "Ethiopian
woman" (in the original, "Cushith"), Onkelos substitutes instead
of this, by "gematria," the words, "of fair
appearance"--the numerical value both of Cushith and of the words "of
fair appearance" being equally 736. By this substitution the objectionable
idea of Moses' marrying an Ethiopian was at the same time removed. Similarly,
the Mishnah maintains that those who loved God were to inherit each 310 worlds,
the numerical value of the word "substance" ("Yesh") in
Proverbs 8:21 being 310. On the other hand, the canons for the deduction of a
"Halachah" from the text of Scripture were much more strict and
logical. Seven such rules are ascribed to Hillel, which were afterwards
enlarged to thirteen. *
* It would be beyond the scope of this volume to explain these
"middoth," or "measurements," and to illustrate them by
examples. Those who are interested in the matter are referred to the very full
discussion on Rabbinical exegesis in my History
of the Jewish Nation, pp. 570-580.
Little
objection can be taken to them; but unfortunately their practical application
was generally almost as fanciful, and certainly as erroneous, as in the case of
the "Haggadah."
Probably
most readers would wish to know something more of those "traditions"
to which our Lord so often referred in His teaching. We have here to
distinguish, in the first place, between the Mishnah and the Gemara. The former
was, so to speak, the text, the latter its extended commentary. At the same
time, the Mishnah contains also a good deal of commentary, and much that is not
either legal determination or the discussion thereof; while the Gemara, on the
other hand, also contains what we would call "text." The word Mishna
(from the verb "shanah") means "repetition"--the term referring
to the supposed repetition of the traditional law, which has been above
described. The Gemara, as the very word shows, means "discussion,"
and embodies the discussions, opinions, and saying of the Rabbis upon, or a
propos of, the Mishnah. Accordingly, the text of the Mishnah is always given in
the pages of the Talmud, which reproduce those discussions thereon of the
Jewish Theological parliament or academy, which constitute the Gemara. The
authorities introduced in the Mishnah and the Gemara range from about the year
180 BC to 430 AD (in the Babylon Talmud). The Mishnah is, of course, the oldest
work, and dates, in its present form and as a written compilation, from the
close of the second century of our era. Its contents are chiefly
"Halachah," there being only one Tractate (Aboth) in which there is
no "Halachah" at all, and another (on the measurements of the Temple)
in which it but very rarely occurs. Yet these two Tractates are of the greatest
historical value and interest. On the other hand, there are thirteen whole Tractates
in the Mishnah which have no "Haggadah" at all, and other twenty-two
in which it is but of rare occurrence. Very much of the Mishnah must be looked
upon as dating before, and especially from the time of Christ, and its
importance for the elucidation of the New Testament is very great, though it
requires to be most judiciously used. The Gemara, or book of discussions on the
Mishnah, forms the two Talmuds--the Jerusalem and the Babylon Talmud. The
former is so called because it is the product of the Palestinian academies; the
latter is that of the Babylonian school. The completion of the Jerusalem or
Palestinian Talmud ("Talmud" = doctrine, lore) dates from the middle
of the fourth, that of the Babylonian from the middle of the sixth century of
our era. It need scarcely be said that the former is of much greater historical
value than the latter. Neither of these two Gemaras, as we now possess them, is
quite complete--that is, there are Tractates in the Mishnah for which we have
no Gemara, either in the Jerusalem or in the Babylon Talmud. Lastly, the
Babylon Talmud is more than four times the size of that of Jerusalem. Obviously
this is not the place for giving even the briefest outline of the contents of
the Mishnah. *
* In Appendix 1 we give as a
specimen a translation of one of the Mishnic Tractates; and in Appendix 2 translations of extracts from the Babylon
Talmud.
Suffice
it here to state that it consists of six books ("sedarim,"
"orders"), which are subdivided into Tractates
("Massichthoth"), and these again into chapters
("Perakim"), and single determinations or traditions
("Mishnaioth"). In quoting the Mishnah it is customary to mention not
the Book (or "Seder") but the special Tractate, the Perek (or
chapter), and the Mishnah. The names of these Tractates (not those of the
books) give a sufficient idea of their contents, which cover every conceivable,
and well-nigh every inconceivable case, with full discussions thereon.
Altogether the Mishnah contains sixty-three Tractates, consisting of 525
chapters, and 4,187 "Mishnaioth."
There
is yet another branch of Jewish theology, which in some respects is the most
interesting to the Christian student. There can be no doubt, that so early as
the time of our Lord a series of doctrines and speculations prevailed which
were kept secret from the multitude, and even from ordinary students, probably
from fear of leading them into heresy. This class of study bears the general
name of the "Kabbalah," and, as even the term (from
"kabal," to "receive," or "hand down") implies,
represents the spiritual traditions handed down from earliest times, although
mixed up, in course of time, with many foreign and spurious elements. The
"Kabbalah" grouped itself chiefly around the history of the creation,
and the mystery of God's Presence and Kingdom in the world, as symbolised in
the vision of the chariot and of the wheels (Eze 1). Much that is found in
Cabbalistic writings approximates so closely to the higher truths of
Christianity, that, despite the errors, superstitions, and follies that mingle
with it, we cannot fail to recognise the continuance and the remains of those
deeper facts of Divine revelation, which must have formed the substance of
prophetic teaching under the Old Testament, and have been understood, or at
least hoped for, by those who were under the guidance of the Holy Spirit.
If now,
at the close of these sketches of Jewish life, we ask ourselves, what might
have been expected as to the relation between Christ and the men and the
religion of His period, the answer will not be difficult. Assuredly, in one
respect Christ could not have been a stranger to His period, or else His
teaching would have found no response, and, indeed, have been wholly
unintelligible to His contemporaries. Nor did He address them as strangers to
the covenant, like the heathen. His was in every respect the continuation, the
development, and the fulfilment of the Old Testament. Only, He removed the
superincumbent load of traditionalism; He discarded the externalism, the
formalism, and the work-righteousness, which had well-nigh obliterated the
spiritual truths of the Old Testament, and substituted in their place the
worship of the letter. The grand spiritual facts, which it embodied, He brought
forward in all their brightness and meaning; the typical teaching of that
dispensation He came to show forth and to fulfil; and its prophecies He
accomplished, alike for Israel and the world. And so in Him all that was in the
Old Testament--of truth, way, and life--became "Yea and Amen." Thus
we can understand how, on the one hand, the Lord could avail Himself of every
spiritual element around, and adopt the sayings, parables, ideas, and customs
of that period--indeed, must have done so, in order to be a true man of the
period,--and yet be so wholly not of that time as to be despised, rejected, and
delivered up unto death by the blind guides of His blinded fellow-countrymen.
Had He entirely discarded the period in which He lived, had He not availed
Himself of all in it that was true or might be useful, He would not have been
of it--not the true man Christ Jesus. Had He followed it, identified Himself
with its views and hopes, or headed its movements, He would not have been the
Christ, the Son of the living God, the promised Deliverer from sin and guilt.
And so we
can also perceive the reason of the essential enmity to Christ on the part of
the Pharisees and Scribes. It was not that He was a new and a strange Teacher;
it was, that He came as the Christ. Theirs was not an opposition of teaching to
His; it was a contrariety of fundamental life-principles. "Light came into
the world, but men loved darkness rather than light." Closely related as
the two were, the Pharisaical Judaism of that and of the present period is at
the opposite pole from the religion of Christ--alike as regards the need of
man, the purposes of God's love, and the privileges of His children. There was
one truth which, we are reluctantly obliged to admit, found, alas! scarcely any
parallel in the teaching of Rabbinism: it was that of a suffering Messiah.
Hints indeed there were, as certain passages in the prophecies of Isaiah could
not be wholly ignored or misrepresented, even by Rabbinical ingenuity, just as
the doctrine of vicarious suffering and substitution could not be eliminated
from the practical teaching of the confession of sins over the sacrifices, when
the worshipper day by day laid his hands upon, and transferred to them his
guilt. Yet Judaism, except in the case of the few, saw not in all this that to
which alone it could point as its real meaning: "The Lamb of God, which
taketh away the sin of the world."
And
now, as century after century has passed, and the gladsome Gospel message has
been carried from nation to nation, while Israel is still left in the darkness
of its unbelief and the misery of its mistaken hope, we seem to realise with
ever increasing force that "The people that walked in darkness have seen a
great light: they that dwell in the land of the shadow of death, upon them hath
the light shined." Yes: "unto us a Child is born, unto us a Son is
given: and the government shall be upon His shoulder: and His Name shall be
called Wonderful, Counsellor, The mighty God, The Everlasting Father, The
Prince of Peace" (Isa 9:2,6). For assuredly, "God hath not cast away
His people which He foreknew." But "all Israel shall be saved: as it
is written, There shall come out of Sion the Deliverer, and shall turn away
ungodliness from Jacob" (Rom 11:2,26). "Watchman, what of the night?
Watchman, what of the night? The watchman said, The morning cometh, and also
the night" (Isa 21:11,12).
Appendix 1
Massecheth Middoth
Â
(Being the Mishnic Tractate Descriptive
of the Measurements of the Temple)
Middoth is the
tenth Tractate of Seder V. (Kodashim) of the Mishnah. It has no Gemara either
in the Jerusalem or the Babylon Talmud. In the former the whole of Seder 5 is
awanting; in the latter only two and a-half Tractates (half Tamid, Middoth, and
Kinnim). Middoth contains Halachah only in the following passages: i, 2, 3, 9;
ii. 2, 4, 5, 6; iii. 3, 5, 8; iv. 2, 5; v. 3, 4. Throughout the Mishnah the
names of 128 sages are introduced. Of those mentioned in this Tractate almost
all witnessed the destruction of the Temple.
Perek I.
1. The priests kept watch in the
Temple in three places: in the house Avtinas, and in the house Nitsuts, and in
the house of Moked; and the Levites in twenty-one places: 5 at the five gates
leading into the Temple (the Mountain of the House), 4 in the four angles
within, 5 at the five gates of the court, 4 in its four angles without, and 1
in the chamber of offering, and 1 in the chamber of the vail, and 1 behind the
Most Holy Place (the House of Atonement).
2. The Captain of the Temple (the
man of the Temple Mount) visited each guard, and burning torches were carried before him. And every guard
which did not stand up (which was not standing), the Captain of the Temple said
to him: "Peace be to thee." If he observed that he slept, he smote
him with his stick, and he had authority to burn his dress. And they said, "What
is the noise (voice) in the court?" "It is the noise of a Levite who
is beaten, and his clothes are set on fire, because he slept upon his
watch." Rabbi Eliezer, the son of Jacob, said: "On one occasion they
found the brother of my mother sleeping, and they burned his dress."
3. There were five gates to the
Temple inclosure (Temple Mount): the two gates of Huldah from the south, which
served for entrance and for exit; Kipponos from the west; Tadi from the
north--it did not serve for anything; the eastern gate, upon which was a representation of the city of
Shushan, and by it the high-priest who burned the Red Heifer, and all who
assisted, went out upon the Mount of Olives.
4. There were seven gates in the
court; three on the north, and three on the south, and one in the east. That in
the south was the gate of burning; second to it, the gate of the firstborn;
third to it, the water gate. That in the east was the gate of Nicanor, and two
chambers belonged to it, one on the right hand, and one on the left--the one the
chamber of Phineas, the wardrobe keeper, and the other the chamber of those who
made the pancake offering. *
* For the daily
offering of the high-priest.
5. And that on the north was the
gate Nitsuts, and it was after the form of an Exhedra, and an Alijah was built on the top of it; and
the priests kept guard above, and the Levites below, and it had a door to the Chel. Second to it was the gate of
offering; third to it the Beth Moked.
6. And four rooms were in the Beth
Moked, like small bed chambers opening on a dining apartment; two in the place that was holy, and two in that which was not holy, and the heads
of the beams separated between that which
was holy and that which was not
holy. And for what did they serve? That on the south-west was the chamber of
offering; that on the south-east the chamber of the shew-bread; on the
north-east, there the Asmoneans deposited the stones of the altar which the
King of Javan had defiled; on the north-west, there they went down to the
bath-house.
7. There were two gates to the
Beth Moked--one opened upon the Chel, the other upon the court. Rabbi Jehudah
says: "That which opened upon the court had a small wicket by which they
went in to explore the court."
8. The Beth Moked was arched, and
was a great house surrounded by extensions (perhaps terraces) of stone, and the
elders of the house of their fathers slept there, and the keys of the court in
their hand; and the young priests, every one with his pillow on the ground
(perhaps his dress).
9. And there was a place there, a
cubit by a cubit, and a slab of marble, and a ring was fastened on it, and the
chain with the keys were hung thereon. When the time came for closing, he
lifted the slab by the ring, and took the keys from the chain, and the priest
closed the gates from within, and the Levite had to sleep without. When he had
finished closing, he returned the keys to the chain, and the slab to its place;
he placed his pillow upon it and slept there. If an accident befell one of
them, he went out and had to go by the winding stair which went under the
house, and lights were burning on either side, till he came to the bath-house.
Rabbi Eliezer, the son of Jacob, said: "By the winding stairs he passed
under the Chel, and went out and had to go through Tadi."
Perek II.
1. The Temple inclosure (the
Temple Mount) was 500 cubits by 500
cubits; it was largest on the south;
next largest on the east; then on the
north; smallest on the west. The place where there was most measurement there
was also most service.
2. All who entered the Temple
inclosure entered by the right, and turned and went out by the left, except
those whom something had befallen, who turned to the left. "What ails thee that thou turnest to the
left?" "Because I am a mourner." "He that dwelleth in this
house comfort thee!" "Because I am under the bann." "He
that dwelleth in this house put it in their hearts, that they restore
thee!" So Rabbi Meir. Rabbi Jose says to him, "This would make it, as
if they had transgressed against him in judgment; but rather: 'He that dwelleth in this house put it in thy heart, that
thou hearken to the words of thy brethren, and they restore thee.'"
3. Farther on was the Sorag, ten handbreadths high. And thirteen breaches were in
it, which the Kings of Javan had made. They restored and strengthened it, and
they decreed towards them thirteen obeisances [in remembrance]. Again
farther on the Chel, ten cubits; and twelve steps were there; the step half a
cubit high, and half a cubit in extension. All the steps which were there, each step was half a cubit high, and the extension half a cubit, except those
which were at the porch. All the doorways and gates which were there, were
twenty cubits high, and ten cubits wide, except that in the porch. All the
doorways which were there, had doors, except that in the porch. All the gates
which were there, had lintels, except that in the gate Tadi, which had two
stones resting, this on the back of that. All the gates which were there, were
renewed to be with gold, except the gate of Nicanor, because there was wrought
upon them a miracle, and some say, because the brass sparkled.
4. All the walls which were there
were high, except the wall in the east, so that the priest who burned the
heifer, standing on the top of the Mount of Olives, and directing himself to
look, saw through the gateway of the sanctuary, at the time when he sprinkled
the blood.
5. The Court of the women was 135
cubits long by 135 cubits broad, and four chambers were in the four angles,
each 40 cubits square, and they were not roofed in. And so they are intended to
be, as it is said: "And he brought me forth into the outer court, and
caused me to pass by the four corners of the court, and behold, in every corner
of the court a court. In the four corners of the court courts smoking" ...It is said, they were
"smoking," and that because they were not roofed. And for what did
they serve? That on the south-east was the chamber of the Nazarites, where the
Nazarites washed their peace-offerings, and polled their hair, and threw it
under the pot. That on the north-east was the wood chamber, where the priests
who were disqualified picked the wood, and every stick in which a worm was
found, it was unfitted for the altar. That on the north-west was the chamber of
the lepers. That on the south-west Rabbi Eliezer, the son of Jacob, said:
"I have forgotten for what it served." Abba Shaul said: "There
they put the wine and the oil; it was called the chamber of the house of
Schamanyah." And it [the wall] was at first flush, and they surrounded it
with a gallery, so that the women looked from above and the men from beneath,
for the purpose that they might not be mixed together. And fifteen steps went
up from there to the Court of Israel, like the fifteen degrees in the Psalms
[Songs of Degrees in the Psalms]. Upon these the Levites stood singing the
songs. They were not rectangular but rounded, like the arc of a rounded
substance.
6. And there were chambers beneath
the Court of Israel, and they opened upon the Court of the Women. There the
Levites placed their harps, and their psalteries, and their cymbals, and all
the musical instruments. The Court of Israel was 135 cubits long by 11 broad,
and similarly, the Court of the Priests was 135 long by 11 broad, and the heads
of the beams divided between the Court of Israel and the Court of the Priests.
Rabbi Eliezer, the son of Jacob, said: There was a step, a cubit high, and upon
it the Duchan was placed, and on it
were three steps, each half a cubit. It results, that the Court of the Priests
was 2 1/2 cubits higher than that of Israel. The entire court was 187 cubits
long and 135 cubits broad. Thirteen obeisances took place there. Abba Jose, the
son of Chanan, said: "Towards the thirteen gates." The southern were: nearest to the west, the upper
gate, then the gate of burning, the
gate of the first-born, and the water-gate. And why was its name called the
water-gate? Because through it they brought the pitcher of water for pouring
out for the "Feast of Tabernacles." Rabbi Eliezer, the son of Jacob,
said: "And by it the waters were flowing down, with the direction of
coming out below the threshold of the Temple." And opposite to them to the
north were: (nearest to the west) the gate of Jeconiah, the gate of offering,
the gate of the women, and the gate of the song. And why was it called the gate
of Jeconiah? Because by it Jeconiah went out into captivity. That on the east was the gate of Nicanor, and it had two
wickets, one on its right and the other on its left. And there were two [gates] to the west; they had no name.
Perek III.
1. The altar was 32 by 32
[cubits]. Upwards 1 cubit, and contract 1 cubit: that was the base. Remain 30
by 30. Upwards 5, and contract 1 cubit: that was the circuit. Remain 28 by 28.
The place of the horns, a cubit on this side and a cubit on that side. Remain
26 by 26. The place for the tread of the priests, a cubit on this side and a
cubit on that side. Remain 24 by 24: the place where the sacrifice was laid
out. Rabbi Jose said: "At the first it was only 28 by 28; though it contracted and went up,
according to this measurement, until there remained the place for laying the
sacrifices: 20 by 20. But when the children of the Captivity came up, they
added to it 4 cubits on the south and 4 on the west like a gamma, because it is said, 'And Ariel shall be 12 cubits long by 12
broad, square.' * That does not mean that it was only 12 by 12, since it is
added: 'In the four corners thereof,' to teach that it measured from the middle
12 cubits in every direction."
* Ezekiel 43:16,
"Ariel" = the lion of God = the altar.
And a scarlet line girdled it in
the middle to separate between the upper and the lower blood-sprinklings. And
the base ran round all the north and all the west side, but was shortened a
cubit on the south and on the east.
2. In the south-western angle were
two apertures, like small nostrils, and the blood, poured on the base to the
west, and on the base to the south, descended through them, and co-mingled in
the canal, and flowed out into the brook Kedron.
3. Below in the pavement, in that
angle, there was a place, a cubit by a cubit, with a tablet of marble, and a ring was fastened in it, and here
they went down into the sewer to cleanse it. And there was a sloping ascent to
the south of the altar, 32 cubits long by 16 broad, and it had a pit at its
west side, into which they put sin-offerings of birds that were defiled.
4. Both the stones of the sloping
ascent and those of the altar were from the valley of Beth Cherem. And they dug
beneath the virgin soil, and brought out from it undamaged (whole) stones, upon
which iron had not been lifted, because iron defiles everything by contact, and
by scratching. One of these stones was scratched: it was defiled; but the rest
were lawful for use. And they whitened them twice in the year, once at the
Passover, and once at the Feast of Tabernacles; and the Sanctuary once at the
Passover. Rabbi * says: "On the eve of every Sabbath they whitened it with
a cloth, on account of the blood-sprinklings." They did not plaster it
with an iron trowel, lest it might touch, and defile. For the iron is created
to shorten the days of man, and the altar is created to lengthen the days of
man, therefore it is not right that that which shortens should be lifted upon
that which lengthens.
* The Rabbi, i.e. R. Jehudah the Holy.
5. And rings were to the north of
the altar: six rows, each of four; but some say, four rows, each of six; and in
these they slaughtered the holy sacrifices. The house (place) of slaughtering
was to the north of the altar. And there were eight short pillars and squares
of cedar upon the top of them, and hooks of iron were fastened in them, and
three rows were upon each of them, upon which they hung up, and they skinned
upon marble tables which were between the pillars.
6. And the laver was between the
porch and the altar, and inclined nearer towards the south. Between the porch
and the altar were 22 cubits, and 12 steps were there, each step half a cubit
high, and its extension a cubit--a cubit, a cubit, and then an extension of three
(cubits); and a cubit, a cubit, and an extension of three; and the topmost, a
cubit, a cubit, and an extension of four (cubits). Rabbi Jehudah said:
"The topmost a cubit, a cubit, and an extension of five (cubits)."
7. The doorway to the porch was 40
cubits high and 20 broad, and five beams of ash were upon the top of it; the
lowest protruded over the doorway a cubit on this and a cubit on that side;
that above it protruded over it a cubit on this and a cubit on that side; it
results, that the topmost [was] 30 cubits, and a buttress of stones was between
each one of them.
8. And supports of cedar were
fixed from the wall of the Sanctuary to the wall of the porch, lest they should
bulge; and chains of gold were fixed in the roof of the porch, and by them the
young priests mounted, to look at the crowns, as it is written: "And
crowns shall be to Helem, and to Tobijah, and to Jedaiah, and to Hen the son of
Zephaniah, for a memorial in the temple of the Lord." A vine of gold was
standing over the entrance to the Sanctuary, and was suspended on the top of
beams. Every one who vowed a leaf, or a berry, or a bunch, brought it, and hung
it up there. Rabbi Eliezer, the son of Rabbi Zadok, said: "It happened
(that they had to remove it) and there were numbered for it 300 priests."
*
* To remove or
to cleanse it.
Perek IV.
1. The entrance to the Sanctuary
was 20 cubits high, and 10 cubits broad; and it had four doors [two
folding-doors]: two within and two without, as it is said: "And the
Sanctuary and the Holy Place had two doors." The outer doors opened to the inside of the doorway, to cover
the thickness of the wall, and the inner doors opened inwards into the house,
to cover behind the doors. For, the whole house was covered with gold, except
behind the doors. Rabbi Jehudah said: "They [both pairs of doors] stood
within the entrance, and were like Azteramita,
* and they folded backwards--these 2 1/2 cubits, and those 2 1/2 cubits. Half a
cubit the door-post from this [corner], and half a cubit the doorpost from
that, and so it is said: 'And the doors had two leaves alike, two
turning-leaves; two for the one door, and two leaves for the other.'"
* The term,
which seems not to have been quite understood even in Talmudical times, is
rendered by Jost: twisted leaf, and derived from strepho.
2. And the great gate had two
wickets, one to the north and one to the south. That to the south, no man ever
passed through it; and to this clearly refers what is said in Ezekiel, as it is
written: "Then the Lord said unto me, This gate shall be shut, it shall
not be opened, and no man shall enter in by it; because the Lord, the God of
Israel, hath entered in by it, therefore it shall be shut." He took the
key, and opened the wicket, and entered the little chamber (atrium), and from
the little chamber into the Sanctuary. Rabbi Jehudah said: "Along the
thickness of the wall he walked, until he found himself standing between the
two gates, and he opened the outer one from within and the inner one from
without."
3. And thirty-eight little
chambers were there--fifteen on the north, fifteen on the south, and eight on
the west. On the north and on the south, five on the top of five, and five on
their top; and on the west three on the top of three, and two on the top of
them. And each one of them had three entrances, one to the little chamber on
the right, and one to the little chamber on the left, and one to the little
chamber on the top. And at the north-western corner were five entrances, one to
the little chamber at the right, and the other to the little chamber on the
top, and another to the winding-stair, and another to the wicket, and another
to the Sanctuary.
4. And the lowermost (chamber) was 5 cubits, and the roofing
(extension, platitude) 6; the middle (chamber) 6, and the roofing 7; and the
uppermost 7, as it is said: "The nethermost chamber was 5 cubits broad,
and the middle 6 cubits broad, and the third 7 cubits broad, for he made
rebatements in the 'house' round about without, that [the beams] should not be
fastened within the walls of the house."
5. And a winding-stair went up
from the north-eastern angle to the north-western angle, by which they went up
to the roofs of the chambers. One went up the winding-stair with his face to
the west, and went all along the north side, until he came to the west. He came
to the west, and turned his face to the south, and went all along the west side
till he came to the south. He came to the south, and turned his face eastwards,
and went along the south side, till he came to the entrance of the Alijah; for
the entrance to the Alijah opened to the south, and in the entrance to the
Alijah were two beams of cedar, by which they went up to the roof of the
Alijah, and the heads of the beams divided in the Alijah between the Holy Place
and the Most Holy Place. And trap-doors opened in the Alijah into the Most Holy
Place, by which they let down the workmen in chests, that they might not feast
their eyes in the Most Holy Place.
6. And the Sanctuary was 100 by
100, by 100 high; the solid foundation 6 cubits, and the height upon it 40
cubits; 1 cubit, decorated scroll; 2 cubits, the place for the water-droppings;
1 cubit covering, and 1 cubit pavement, and the height of the Alijah 40 cubits,
and 1 cubit scroll-work, and 2 cubits the place for the dropping, and 1 cubit
covering, and 1 cubit pavement, and 3 cubits balustrade, and 1 cubit
scare-raven. Rabbi Jehudah said: "The scare-raven was not counted from the
measurement, but the balustrade was 4 cubits."
7. From the east to the west 100
cubits--the wall of the porch 5, and the porch 11; the wall of the Sanctuary 6,
and its interior space 40 cubits, 1 cubit intermediate wall, and 20 cubits the
Most Holy Place, the wall of the Sanctuary 6, and the little chamber 6, and the
wall of the little chamber 5. From the north to the south 70 cubits--the wall
of the winding-stair 5, and the winding-stair 3, the wall of the little chamber
5, and the little chamber 6, the wall of the Sanctuary 6, and its interior
space 20 cubits, the wall of the Sanctuary 6, and the little chamber 6, and the
wall of the little chamber 5, and the place for the going down of the water 3
cubits, and the wall 5 cubits. The porch protruded beyond it, 15 cubits from
the north and 15 cubits from the south, and it was called the house of the sacrificial
knives, because there they deposited the knives. And the Sanctuary was narrow
behind and wide in front, and like to a lion, as it is said: "O Ariel, the
lion of God, the city where David dwelt." As the lion is narrow behind and
wide in front, so is the Sanctuary narrow behind and wide in its front.
Perek V.
1. The whole court was 187 cubits
long by 135 cubits broad. From the east to the west 187: the place for the
tread of Israel 11 cubits; the place for the tread of the priests 11 cubits;
the altar 32; between the porch and the altar 22 cubits; the Sanctuary 100
cubits; and 11 cubits behind the house of Atonement.
2. From the north to the south 135
cubits: the altar and the circuit 62; from the altar to the rings 8 cubits; the
place of the rings 24 cubits; from the rings to the tables 4; from the tables
to the pillars 4; from the pillars to the wall of the court 8 cubits; and the
rest between the circuit and the wall, and the place of the pillars.
3. There were six rooms in the
court--three to the north, and three to the south. Those on the north: the
salt-chamber, the chamber Parvah, the
chamber of those who washed out. The salt-chamber: there they put salt to the
offering. The chamber of Parvah:
there they salted the skins of the holy sacrifices, and on the roof was the
bath-house of the high-priest on the Day of Atonement. The chamber of those who
washed out, where they washed the inwards of the holy things, and thence a
winding-stair went up to the roof of the house of Parvah.
4. Those on the south: the
wood-chamber, the chamber of the captivity, the chamber of "hewn
stones." The wood-chamber--said Rabbi Eliezer, the son of Jacob: "I
have forgotten for what it served." Abba Shall said: It was the chamber of
the high-priest, and it lay behind the other two, and a roof was extended over
the three (they had one common roof). The chamber of the captivity: a well was
there which they of the captivity had digged, and a wheel was placed upon it,
and thence they provided water for the whole court. The chamber of "hewn
stones": there the great Sanhedrim of Israel sat, and judged the
priesthood. And the priest in whom was found disqualification was clothed in
black, and veiled in black, and went out, and had to go. And if there was not
found in him disqualification, he was dressed in white, and veiled in white; he
went in and served with his brethren the priests. And they made a feast-day,
because there was not found disqualification in the seed of Aaron the priest,
and thus spake they: "Blessed be God, blessed be He, that there has not
been found disqualification in the seed of Aaron, and blessed be He Who has
chosen Aaron and his sons, to stand to serve before the face of the Lord in the
Most Holy House."
Appendix
2
Extracts from the Babylon Talmud
Massecheth Berachoth,
or Tractate on Benedictions
Berachoth is the
first Tractate of the first Seder (Seraim, which consists of eleven Tractates).
It contains nine Perakim, which successively explain the duty, the exceptions,
the posture, the formulas, and the controversies in regard to prayer. The
Tractate exists both in the Jerusalem and in the Babylon Talmud. The great
Maimonides has prefaced the Seder Seraim by a General Introduction, which
presents a general view of Talmudism, and explains what is of greatest
importance to the student. Notwithstanding his vast learning and authority,
incompleteness and inaccuracies have, however, been pointed out in his
Introduction.
Mishnah--From what time is the
"Shema" said in the evening? From the hour that the priests entered
to eat of their therumah * until the end of the first night watch. ** These are
the words of Rabbi Eliezer. But the sages say: Till midnight. Rabban Gamaliel
says: Until the column of the morning (the dawn) rises. It happened, that his sons
came back from a banquet. They said to him: "We have not said the
'Shema.'" He said to them, "If the column of the morning has not come
up, you are bound to say it." And not only this have they said, but,
wherever the sages have said "till midnight," their command applies
till the morning column rises. The burning of the fat and of the members (of
sacrifices) is lawful till the morning column rise; *** and so everything which
is to be eaten on the same day (on which it has been offered) is allowed to be
eaten till the rise of the morning column. If so, why do the sages say,
"till midnight?" In order to keep a man far from transgressing.
* The
heave-offering given to the priests, which they ate within the Temple.
** The Jews
divided the night into three watches.
*** That is,
they may be left to consume on the altar from the time of evening sacrifice
till then.
Gemara--Fol. 3 a. To the end of the night watch.--How does
Rabbi Eliezer mean this? If he means that the night has three watches, he
should say till four hours; and if he means that the night has four watches, he
should say till three hours. Indeed, he means that the night has three watches,
but he indicates by the expression that there are night watches in heaven, as
there are night watches upon earth. For we have this doctrine: Rabbi Eliezer
says, There are three night watches in the night, and in every one of these
night watches the Holy One, blessed be His Name, sits and roars like a lion.
For it is written (Jer 25:30), "Jehovah shall roar from on high, from the
habitation of His holiness shall He give out His voice; roaring shall He roar
on account of His habitation." The signs of this thing are as follows: In
the first night watch the ass brays, in the second the dogs bark, in the third
the suckling sucks his mother, and the wife speaks to her husband. How does
Rabbi Eliezer indicate them? Does he thus indicate the commencement of the
night watch? The commencement of the first night watch, what need is there for
a sign of it, seeing it is night? Or does he refer to the end of the night
watch? For the end of the last night watch, why does he give me a sign, seeing
it is day? But he indicates the end of the first night watch and the
commencement of the last night watch, and the middle of the middle night watch.
And if thou wilt, I will say that he refers in all to the end of the night
watches. And if thou sayest, the last does not require it, what is attained by
it? The reading of the "Shema" for him who sleeps in a dark house,
and does not know the time for saying the "Shema" when it is, so
that, when the woman speaks with her husband and the babe sucks its mother, he
may rise up and say the prayer.
Rabbi Isaac, the son of Samuel,
says, in the name of Rab, "The night has three watches, and in each one of
these watches does the Holy One, blessed be His Name, sit and roar like a lion,
and say, 'Woe to the children, because on account of their sins I have laid
desolate My house, and burned My temple, and have driven them forth among the
nations of the world.'"
We have this doctrine: Rabbi Jose
said, "On one occasion I was traveling, and I entered into one of the
ruins of Jerusalem to pray. Then came Elijah--his memory be for good--and
waited for me at the door till I had finished my prayer. After that I had
finished my prayer, he said to me, 'Peace be to thee, Rabbi'; and I said to
him, 'Peace be to thee, Rabbi, and my teacher.' And he said to me, 'My son, why
didst thou enter into this ruin?' I said to him, 'In order to pray.' And he
said to me, 'Thou mightest have prayed on the road.' And I said to him, 'I was
afraid that those who passed on the road might perhaps interrupt me.' He said
to me, 'Thou shouldest have prayed a short prayer.' In that hour I learned from
him three things. I learned that one may not enter into a ruin, and I learned
that one may pray on the road, and I learned that he that prays on the road
should pray a short prayer. He also said to me, 'My son, what voice hast thou
heard in that ruin?' And I said to him, 'I have heard the "Bath Kol,"
* which cooed like a dove, and said, "Woe to the children, because on
account of their sins I have laid waste My House, and I have burned My
Sanctuary, and I have driven them forth among the nations."' And he said
to me, 'By thy life, and by the life of thy head, not only at that time did the
voice say so, but every day three times does it say so; and not only this, but
also at the time when Israel enter the house of prayer and the house of study,
and when they say, "Blessed be His great Name"; then the Holy One,
blessed be His Name, moves His head, and says, "Happy is the king whom
they thus praise in His house." What remains to the father who has driven
his children into captivity? and woe to the children who have been driven forth
from the table of their father.'"
* Literally
"Daughter Voice"--the voice from heaven.
The Rabbis teach: On account of
three things a ruin is not to be entered. On account of suspicion, * and on
account of falling in (of the wall), and on account of evil spirits. On account
of suspicion--does it not suffice on account of falling in? (Would that not
have been alone a sufficient ground?) Fol. 3 b. Not if it is recent. ** But
would it not suffice: On account of evil spirits? Not when there are two. ***
If there are two, does not the ground of suspicion cease? Not if the two are
impudent...
* Of secret sin.
** If it has
only lately become a ruin, since then there would be no immediate danger.
*** Because
where there are two, they need not fear evil spirits.
The Rabbis taught: The night has
four watches. These are the words of Rabbi (Jehudah the Holy). Rabbi Nathan
says: Three. What is the reason of Rabbi Nathan? Because it is written (Judg
7:19), "So Gideon came, and the hundred men that were with him, unto the
outside of the camp, in the beginning of the middle watch. He taught: 'There is
no middle, unless there is one before and one after it. And Rabbi, What is the
meaning of the "middle?"' (He replied) 'One of the middle ones among
the middle ones.' And Rabbi Nathan, 'Is it written: "The middle of the
middle ones?" It is only written the middle one.'" But what ground
has Rabbi? Rabbi Serika said, that Rabbi Ami said, that Rabbi Joshua, the son
of Levi, said: In one place it is said (Psa 119:62), "At midnight I will
rise to give thanks unto Thee, because of Thy righteous judgments." And in
another place it is said (v 148), "Mine eyes prevent the night
watches." How is this? Because the night has four watches. And Rabbi
Nathan? He interprets it just as Rabbi Joshua. For we have this teaching: Rabbi
Joshua says, "To three hours (into the day the 'Shema' may be said); for
this is the way of kings, to rise at three hours (after daybreak). Six hours of
the night (from midnight to dawn are six hours) and two by day make together two
night watches" (each of four hours). Rabbi Ashi says: "A night watch
and a half might also be called night watches." *
* All this is
intended to establish Rabbi Nathan's view, that there are only three watches in
the night.
Rabbi Serika also said, that Rabbi
Ami said, that Rabbi Joshua, the son of Levi, said: "You must not speak
before the dead anything but the words of the dead." Rabbi Aba, the son of
Cahana, said: "They do not say this except in reference to the words of
the law (because every one is bound to take part in such conversation); but as
to ordinary conversation it does not matter." And some say, Rabbi Aba, the
son of Cahana, said, "They do not say this merely concerning the words of
Scripture, but much more also concerning ordinary conversation."
And David rose at midnight (as
before quoted). Did he not rise in the evening? since it is written (v 147),
"I prevented the gloaming, and cried." And how do we know that this
gloaming was that of the evening? Because it is written (Prov 7:9): "In
the gloaming, in the evening of the day, in the denseness of the night and of
darkness." Rabbi Oshja said, that Rabbi Acha said, So spake David:
"Never has the middle of the night passed over me in sleep." Rabbi
Seira said, "To the middle of the night he was sleeping like a horse; from
that time and afterwards he strengthened himself like a lion." Rabbi Ashi
said, "To the middle of the night he occupied himself with the words of
the law; from that and afterwards with psalms and hymns." And the gloaming
is that of the evening. Is there not also a gloaming of the morning? As it is
written (1 Sam 30:17): "And David smote them from the gloaming even to the
evening of the next day." Is it not so, from that of the morning to that
of the evening? No, from the evening again to the evening. If this were so, it
would have been written, "From the gloaming to the gloaming," or
else, "From the evening to the evening." Also Raba said: "There
are two gloamings, the gloaming of the night, and then comes the morning, and
the gloaming of the day, and then comes the night." And David, How did he
know the middle of the night when it was, since Moses our teacher did not know
it? For it is written (Exo 11:4), "About midnight will I go out into the
midst of Egypt." What is it "about midnight?" If it should be
said that the Holy One, blessed be His Name, said to him "about the
middle"--can there be any doubting in heaven? But he said to him "at
midnight." Then came he and said "about midnight" (that is,
Moses said so, because he did not know exactly when midnight was). Accordingly
he was in doubt; and David, should he have known? David had a sign, for Rabbi
Acha, the son of Bisna, said that Rabbi Simeon, the pious, said: "A harp
was hung up above the bed of David, and when the middle of the night came, the
north wind arose and blew over it, and it sounded of itself. Immediately he
rose up and studied in the Thorah till the morning column arose. As soon as the
morning column arose, the sages of Israel went to him. They said to him: 'Our
Lord, O King! thy people Israel require to be supported.' He said to them,
'Support yourselves one of the other.' They said to him, 'A handful does not
satisfy a lion, and a pit is not filled with its own sand.' He said to them,
'Go and spread your hands in the army (make wars of conquest).' Immediately
they took counsel with Ahithophel and thought over it in the Sanhedrim, and
inquired at the Urim and Thummim." Rabbi Joseph said: "What else
should this Scripture be (1 Chron 27:34): 'And after Ahithophel was Benajahu,
the son of Jehoiada (the reading is here different from that of our text), and
Abiathar; and the general of the king's army was Joab.' Ahithophel, he was the
counsellor, and so it is said (2 Sam 16:23), 'And the counsel of Ahithophel,
which he counselled in those days, was as if a man had inquired at the oracle
of God.' Benajahu, the son of Jehoiada, that is the Sanhedrim, * and Abiathar;
these are the Urim and Thummim. And so it is said (2 Sam 20:23), 'And Benaiah,
the son of Jehoiada, was over the Cherethites, and over the Pelethites.' And
why was their name called Cherethites and Pelethites? Cherethites, because they
cut short their words, and Pelethites, because they were wonderful in their
words. ** And after these was Joab, the general of the king." Rabbi Isaac,
the son of Idi, said, "Some say, what else *** means the Scripture (Psa
57:8), 'Awake up, my glory; awake, psaltery and harp; I myself will wake the
morning?'" Rabbi Seria said, "Moses knew it (the midnight hour), and
so also did David know it. But if David knew it, for what was the harp? To
awaken him from sleep. And if Moses knew it, why did he require to say, 'about
midnight?' Moses thought, perhaps, the astronomers of Pharaoh may err, and then
say, 'Moses is a liar.' For the Master says, 'Teach thy tongue to say, I do not
know; perhaps thou mayest be regarded as inventing, and be seized.'" Rabbi
Ashi said, "It was in the middle of the night of the thirteenth, after
which the fourteenth dawns"; and so Moses said to Israel, "The Holy
One, blessed be His Name, says, 'To-morrow, about midnight, as now, I shall go
out in the midst of Egypt.'"
* Whose chief he
is supposed to have been.
** There is here
a play on the words.
*** Referring
again to the saying of Rabbi Simeon, the pious, mentioned earlier.
Fol. 16 b. Rabbi Elazar said:
"What is it that is written (Psa 63:4), 'Thus will I bless Thee while I
live; I will lift up my hands in Thy Name?' 'I will bless Thee while I live':
that is saying the 'Shema.' 'I will lift my hands in Thy Name': that is
prayer;--and if he does so, of him does the Scripture say, 'My soul shall be
satisfied as with marrow and fatness.' And not only this, but he inherits two
worlds--this world and the world to come, as it is written, 'And my mouth shall
praise Thee with lips of joys.'" *
* The plural
indicating the two worlds.
Rabbi Elazar, after he had
finished his prayer, said thus: "May it please Thee, O Lord our God, that
Thou wouldest cause to dwell in our lot love and brotherhood, peace and
friendship, and increase our possession with disciples, and gladden our end
with a happy end, and with hope, and place our portion in Paradise. Order us in
good fellowship, and with the inclination for good in this world, that we may
rise and find our hearts in the fear of Thy Name, and that the desire of our
souls may come before Thee for good." *
* This and the
following are prayers at night.
Rabbi Jochanan, after he had
finished his prayer, said thus: "May it please Thee, O Lord our God, that
Thou mayest look upon our shame and see our sorrows, and that Thou clothe
thyself with mercy, and that Thou cover Thyself with Thy might, and that Thou
robe Thyself with Thy grace, and that Thou gird Thyself with favour, that there
come before Thee the measurement of Thy goodness and of Thy
condescension."
Rabbi Seira, after he had finished
his prayers, said thus: "May it please Thee, O Lord our God, that we may
not sin, and not be put to shame, and not be confounded before our
fathers."
Rabbi Chija, after he had finished
his prayers, said thus: "May it please Thee, O Lord our God, that Thy
Thorah be our labour, and that our hearts be not faint, and that our eyes be
not darkened."
Rab, after he had finished his
prayers, said thus: "May it please Thee, O Lord our God, to give us
prolonged life, a life of peace, a life of good, a life of blessing, a life of
nourishment, a life of vigorous strength, a life in which there shall be the
fear of sin, a life in which there shall be neither shame nor confusion, a life
of riches and honour, a life in which there shall be among us love of the
Thorah and the fear of heaven, a life in which Thou fulfil in us all the
desires of our hearts for good."
Rabbi, after he had finished his
prayers, said thus: "May it please Thee, O Lord our God, and the God of
our fathers, to preserve us from the daring sinner and from daring sin, from an
evil man and an evil accident, from the evil impulse, from an evil companion,
from an evil neighbour, from Satan the destroyer, from a severe judgment, and
from a severe opponent, whether he be a son of the covenant or not." And
this, although the officers stood around Rabbi. *
* He was not
deterred by their presence from so praying.
Rabbi Saphra, after he had
finished his prayers, said thus: "May it please Thee, O Lord our God, that
Thou wilt put peace among the family above (the angels) and in the family
below, and between the students who busy themselves with Thy Thorah, whether
they busy themselves with it for its own sake or not for its own sake; and with
reference to all who busy themselves with it not for its own sake, may it
please Thee, that they may busy themselves with it for its own sake."
Rabbi Alexander, after he had
finished his prayer, said thus: "May it please Thee, O Lord our God, to
place us in a corner of light, and not in a corner of darkness, and let not out
heart become faint, nor our eyes become darkened." But some say, it was
Rab who prayed this prayer, and that Rabbi Alexander, after he had prayed, said
thus: "Lord of the worlds, it is manifest and known before Thee that our
pleasure is to do Thy pleasure, and who hinders it? The leaven in the bake-meat
and the service of foreign domination. May it please Thee to deliver us from
their hands, that we may return to do the laws of Thy good pleasure with a
perfect heart."
Raba, when he had finished his
prayer, said thus: "Lord, until I was created I was nothing, and now that
I am created, I am as if I were not created. Dust I am in life, and how much
more when I am dead? Behold I am before Thee like a vessel filled with shame
and confusion. May it please Thee, O Lord our God, that I may no more sin, and
what I have sinned before Thee, blot out in Thy great mercy, but not through
chastisements and evil diseases." And the same was the confession of Rab
Hamnuna the Less on the Day of Atonement.
Mar, the son of Rabina, when he
had ended his prayer, said as follows: "Lord, keep our tongue from evil,
and our lips from speaking guile. And towards those who curse my soul, let me
be silent, and let my soul be like the dust towards all. Open my heart in Thy
law, and let my soul follow after Thy commandments, and deliver me from an evil
accident, from the evil disposition, and from an evil woman, and from all evil
which lifts itself up to come into the world. And all who think evil against
me, speedily destroy their counsel, and render vain their thoughts. May it
please Thee, that the words of my mouth and the meditation of my heart be
acceptable before Thee, O Lord, my strength and my Redeemer."
Rabbi Sheisheth, when he had
fasted, said, after he had finished his prayer: "Lord of the world, it is
evident before Thee, that at the time that the Sanctuary stood, a man sinned,
and he brought an offering, nor did they offer of it anything but its fat and
its blood, and he was forgiven. And now I have remained in fasting, and my fat
and my blood have been diminished, may it please Thee, that my fat and my blood
which have been diminished be as if I had offered them upon the altar, and be
merciful to me."
Rabbi Jochanan, when he had
finished the book of Job, said thus: "The end of a man is to die, and the
end of an animal is to be slaughtered, and all are appointed to death. Blessed
is he who has grown up in the Thorah, and busied himself with the Thorah, and
labours to have a quiet spirit towards his Creator, and who has grown big with
a good name, and who has departed from this world with a good name. And of him,
says Solomon (Eccl 7:1): 'A good name is better than precious ointment; and the
day of death than the day of one's birth.'"
It was customary in the mouth of
Rabbi Meir: "Learn with all thy heart and with all thy soul, in order to
know My ways, and to grow up by the gates of My Thorah. Keep My Thorah in thy
heart, and let My fear be before thine eyes. Keep thy mouth from all sin, and
cleanse and sanctify thyself from all transgression and sin, and I shall be
with thee in every place."
Fol. 55 a. Rabbi Chisda said:
"Every dream is without a meaning, but not if one has fasted (on account
of it)." Also Rabbi Chisda said: "A dream which is not interpreted is
like a letter which is not read." Also Rabbi Chisda said: "Neither is
there a good dream in which everything comes to pass, nor yet a bad dream in
which everything comes to pass." Also Rabbi Chisda said: "An evil
dream is better than a good dream." Also Rabbi Chisda said: "An evil
dream, its sorrow is sufficient; a good dream, its pleasure is
sufficient." Rabbi Joseph said: "A good dream even the joy with me annuls
it." * Rabbi Chisda also said: "An evil dream is heavier than a
chastisement, for it is written (Eccl 3:14), 'And God doeth it, that men should
fear before Him.'" And Rabbah, the grandson of Chanah, said, Rabbi
Jochanan said: "This refers to an evil dream. (Jer 23:28), 'The prophet
that hath a dream, let him tell a dream; and he that hath My Word, let him
speak My Word faithfully. What is the chaff to the wheat? saith the Lord.' But
what have the wheat and the chaff to do with a dream?" But, says Rabbi
Jochanan, in name of Rabbi Simeon, the son of Joche, "As wheat alone is
not possible without straw, so also is a dream not possible without false
things." Rabbi Berachiah said: "A dream, even if a part of it is
fulfilled, the whole of it is not fulfilled. Whence have we this? From Joseph,
for it is written (Gen 37:9), 'And behold the sun and the moon,' etc. And at
that time his mother was no more." Rabbi Levi said: "Let a man always
look forward in regard to a good dream, even as long as twenty-two years.
Whence have we that? From Joseph, for it is written (Gen 37:2), 'These are the
generations of Jacob. Joseph was seventeen years old,' and so on. And it is
written (Gen 41:46), 'And Joseph was thirty years old when he stood before
Pharaoh,' and so on. From seventeen to thirty, how much is it? Thirteen. And
seven of plenty, and two of famine, that makes twenty-two."
* This Rabbi was
blind.
Rabbi Huna said: "To a good
man a good dream is not shown, and to an evil man an evil dream is not shown.
We have this doctrine: All the years of David he did not see a good dream, and
all the years of Ahithophel he did not see an evil dream. But yet it is written
(Psa 91:10), 'There shall no evil befall thee.'"...
Rabbi Huna, the son of Ami, said,
Rabbi Pedath said, Rabbi Jochanan said: "He that seeth a dream, and his
soul is distressed, let him go and interpret it before three." Let him
interpret it? But Rabbi Chisda said: "A dream which is not interpreted is
like a letter which is not read." But certainly (I mean), that he give a
good interpretation before three. He summons three, and he says to them,
"I have had a good dream." And they say to him, "Behold, it is
good, and it will be good. The Merciful One turn it to good. Seven times let it
be decreed upon thee from heaven that it be good, and it will be good."
Then they say three turnings, and three deliverances, and three times
"Peace." Three turnings (Psa 30:11), "Thou hast turned for me my
mourning into dancing: Thou hast put off my sackcloth, and girded me with
gladness." Again (Jer 31:13),
"Then shall the virgin rejoice in the dance, both young men and old
together: for I will turn their mourning into joy," and so on. Again (Deu 23:5), "Nevertheless the
Lord thy God would not hearken unto Balaam; but He turned," and so on.
"Three deliverances," as it is written (Psa 55:18), "He hath
delivered my soul in peace from the battle that was against me," and so
on; (Isa 35:10), "And the ransomed of the Lord shall return," and so
on; (1 Sam 14:45), "And the people said unto Saul, Shall Jonathan die, who
hath wrought this salvation in Israel?" "Three times peace," as
it is written (Isa 57:19), "I create the fruit of the lips; Peace, peace
to him that is far off, and to him that is near, saith the Lord," etc.; (1
Chron 12:18), "Then the spirit clothed Amasai," and so on; (1 Sam
25:6), "Thus shall ye say to him that liveth, Peace be both to thee, and
peace be to thine house," and so on.
Ameimer, and Mar Sutra, and Rabbi
Ashi were sitting all together. They said: "Would that each one might say
something which had not been heard by his companion." Then began one among
them, and said: "If any one has seen a dream, and does not know what he
has seen, let him place himself before the priests of his time, while they
spread their hands (in blessing), and let him say thus: 'Lord of the world, I
am Thine, and my dreams are Thine. I have dreamt a dream, and I know not what
it is, whether I have dreamed for myself, or whether my companions have dreamt
of me, or whether I have dreamt of others. If they be good (dreams) confirm
them, and strengthen them, like the dreams of Joseph; and if they need healing,
heal them, as the waters of Marah by the hands of Moses, our teacher, and as
Miriam from her leprosy, and as Hezekiah from his sickness, and as the waters
of Jericho by the hands of Elisha. And as Thou hast turned into blessing the
curse of Balaam, the wicked one, so turn all my dreams for me to good.' And let
him finish with the priests, that the congregation may say, 'Amen.' And if not,
let him say thus: 'Mighty One in the heights, Who dwellest in strength, Thou
art peace, and Thy name is peace. May it please Thee to dispense to us
peace.'" The next one began, and said: "If any one enters into a
city, and is afraid of the evil eye, let him take the thumb of his right hand
into his left, and the thumb of his left hand into his right hand, and let him
say thus: 'I, such an one, the son of such an one, descend from the seed of
Joseph, over whom an evil eye can have no power, as it is written (Gen 49:22),
"Joseph is a fruitful bough, even a fruitful bough by a well," and so
on.'" Read not: "by a well" but "transcending the
eye." * Rabbi Jose, the son of Rabbi Chaninah, said: "From this (Gen
48:16), 'And let them grow' (like fishes). ** As fishes, which inhabit the
waters, are covered by them, and no evil eye has power over them, so also the
seed of Joseph, no evil eye has power over it. But if he is afraid of his own
evil eye, let him look on his left nostril." And the third commenced and
said: "If any one is sick, let him not make it known the first day, lest
he make his fate worse. But after that and onwards let him make it known. So it
was with Raba when he was ill, the first day he did not make it known. From
that and onwards he said to his servant: 'Go outside, and cry, Raba is sick; he
that pitieth me, let him ask for me pity, and he that hateth me, let him
rejoice over me.'" And it is written (Prov 24:17,18), "Rejoice not
when thine enemy falleth, and let not thine heart be glad when he stumbleth:
lest the Lord see it, and it displease Him, and He turn away His wrath from
him."
* There is a
play here upon the words.
** Another play
upon the words.
Samuel, when he had seen an evil
dream, said (Zech 10:2): "For the idols have spoken vanity, and the
diviners have seen a lie, and the dreams speak false things." And when he
saw a good dream he said: "And should dreams indeed speak falsehood seeing
it is written (Num 12:6), 'I will speak in a dream to him?'" Raba asked:
"It is written, 'In a dream I will speak to him'; and it is written, 'And
dreams speak falsehood.'" That is no question--for the one is by an angel
and the other by an evil spirit.
Rabbi Bisna, the son of Sabda,
said, Rabbi Akiba said, Rabbi Panda said, Rabbi Nahum said, Rabbi Birim said in
the name of an aged man--and who is he? Rabbi Banah: "There were
four-and-twenty interpreters of dreams in Jerusalem. Once I dreamed a dream,
and I went before them all, and what the one interpreted to me the other did
not interpret to me, and yet all were fulfilled to me, in order to fulfil what
is written, 'All dreams go after the mouth.' But is this Scripture, 'All dreams
go after the mouth?'" Yes, and according to Rabbi Elasar. For Rabbi Elasar
said, "Whence this, that all dreams go after the mouth?" Because it
is said (Gen 41:13), "And it came to pass, as he interpreted to us, so it
was." Raba said: "But this only, if he interpret to be according to
the contents of the dream, as it is written (Gen 41:12), 'To each man according
to his dream he did interpret'; (Gen 40:16), 'And the chief baker saw that the
interpretation was good.'" Whence did he know it? Rabbi Elasar said:
"This teaches, that each one of them saw the dream and the interpretation
of the dream of his companion."
Rabbi Jochanan said: "If one
rises, and a verse comes into his mouth, behold this is like a little
prophecy." And Rabbi Jochanan said: "Three dreams are fulfilled--a
morning dream, a dream which one's companion has dreamed, and a dream which is
interpreted in the middle of the dream" (or by a dream). And some say
also, a dream which is repeated, as it is said (Gen 41:32), "And for that
the dream was doubled," and so on. Rabbi Samuel, the son of Nachmeni,
said, Rabbi Jonathan said: "Nothing else is shown to a man but what is in
the thoughts of his heart." For it is said (Dan 2:29), "As for thee,
O king, thy thoughts came into thy mind upon thy bed." And if thou wilt, I
shall say: from this (Dan 2:30), "That thou mightest know the thoughts of
thy heart." Raba said: "Thou canst know it, for there is not shown to
a man either a golden palm tree, nor an elephant going through the eye of a
needle." ...
Fol. 56 a--The son of Hedja was an
interpreter of dreams. If any one gave him a reward, he interpreted his dreams
for good; if any one did not give him a reward, he interpreted for evil. Abaje
and Raba saw a dream. Abaje gave him a susa, and Raba gave him nothing. They
said to him: "We read in the dreams (Deu 28:31), 'Thine ox shall be slain
before thine eyes,' etc." To Raba he said: "Thy business will be
ruined, and thou shalt have no desire to eat from sorrow of thy heart." To
Abaje he said: "Thy business will be extended, and thou shalt have no
desire to eat from the joy of thy heart." They said to him: "We read
(v 41), 'Thou shalt beget sons and daughters,' and so on." To Raba he
said: "They will be taken captive." To Abaje he said: "Thy sons
and thy daughters shall be many, and hence thy daughters shall be married
outside the land, so that they will seem to thee as if they had been led
captive." "We read (v 32): 'Thy sons and thy daughters shall be given
unto another people.'" To Abaje he said: "Thy sons and thy daughters
shall be many. Thou shalt say, to thy relatives (thou wilt wed them), but she
(thy wife) shall say: to her relatives, and she will induce thee, that thou
wilt give them to her relatives; which are like another nation." To Raba
he said: "Thy wife shall die, and her sons and her daughters shall come
under the hands of another wife." For Raba said, Rabbi Jeremiah, the son
of Aba, said, Rav said: "What is it that is written: 'Thy sons and thy
daughters shall I give to another nation.' That is, the wife of the father
(step-mother)." "We read in the dreams (Eccl 9:7): 'Go, eat thy bread
with joy.'" To Abaje he said: "Thy business shall be extended, and
thou shalt eat and drink, and read the verse in the joy of thy heart." To
Raba he said: "Thy business shall be ruined, thou shalt kill, but shalt
not eat nor drink, and shalt read for the sake of comforting thyself." ...
In the end Raba went alone to him.
He said to him: "I have seen that the inner house-door has fallen."
He said to him: "Thy wife shall die." He said to him: "I saw
that my molar teeth and my teeth fell out." He said to him: "Thy sons
and thy daughters shall die." He said to him: "I saw that two doves
flew away." He said to him: "Two wives shalt thou divorce." He
said to him: "I saw two heads of cabbage." He said to him: "Two
boxes on the ear shalt thou swallow." Raba went on that day and sat in the
academy all the day. Then he found two blind men who quarrelled with one
another. Then Raba went to separate them, and they struck Raba twice; they
lifted up to strike another time, and he said, "Hold, I have seen only
two."
In the end Raba came and gave him
a reward. He said to him: "I saw that the wall fell." He said to him:
"Property without limits shalt thou obtain." He said to him: "I
saw the Palace of Abaje that it fell, and its dust covered me." He said to
him: "Abaje shall die, and his chair shall come to thee." He said to
him: "I saw my own palace that it fell, and then the whole world came and
took brick by brick." He said to him: "Thy teaching shall spread
through the world." He said to him: "I saw that my head was split and
my brain came out." He said to him: "The wool of thy pillow shall
come out." He said to him: "I read the Egyptian Hallel in the
dream." He said to him: "Miracles shall be done for thee." He
went with him upon a ship. He said: "To a man for whom miracles shall be
done, what is the use of this?" As he ascended, a book fell from him. Raba
found it, and saw that there was written in it: "All dreams go after the
mouth." He said to him: "Wicked One, upon thee it depended, and thou
hast much afflicted me. Everything I forgive thee, except about the daughter of
Rabbi Chisda (who was his wife). May it be the will (of God), that this man be
given over into the hands of the government, who have no pity upon him."
He said: "What shall I do? for it is ordered, that the curse of a sage,
even if it come causeless, shall happen. How much more is this the case with
Raba, who has judged me with justice." He said: "I will go and
emigrate, for the master said, 'Banishment expiates sin.'" He arose and
emigrated to the Romans. He went and sat down at the door of the head treasurer
of the king. The head treasurer saw a dream. He said to him: "I saw a
dream, that a needle went into my finger." He said to him: "Give me a
susa"; but he gave him nothing, and hence he said nothing at all to him.
He said to him: "I saw that a worm fell upon two of my fingers." He
said to him: "Give me a susa"; but he gave him nothing, and he did
not say anything at all to him. He said to him: "I saw that a worm fell
upon my whole hand." He said to him: "A worm has come into all the
garments" (of the king). They heard this in the house of the king, and
they brought the head treasurer in order that they might kill him. He said to
him: "Why I? let him be brought who knew it and did not say." They
brought the son of Hedja. He said to him: "On account of thy susa have
been spoiled the garments of the king." They bound two cedars with rope,
and tied one foot to one cedar, and the other foot to the other cedar, and let
go the ropes, so that his head was split; for each cedar went back and stood in
its place, and he was split and fell in two.
[And so the interpretation of
dreams goes on for other two and a half folio pages. These three specimen
extracts may suffice to give examples of the indifferent, the good, and the
absurd, which constitute the Talmud. They will show the necessity of discrimination,
and how readily the Talmud, as a whole, may be either decried by enemies or
unduly exalted by a judicious selection of passages.]